summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/38431-h
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authorRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-14 20:10:18 -0700
committerRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-14 20:10:18 -0700
commitb61c6bd9f96bf605e7ebbf712e83d332ab94e5c0 (patch)
treee66ef5f112a6d07817cd41e78349a05049adf9da /38431-h
initial commit of ebook 38431HEADmain
Diffstat (limited to '38431-h')
-rw-r--r--38431-h/38431-h.htm9535
-rw-r--r--38431-h/images/illus-001.jpgbin0 -> 59782 bytes
-rw-r--r--38431-h/images/illus-002.jpgbin0 -> 65778 bytes
-rw-r--r--38431-h/images/illus-003.jpgbin0 -> 57909 bytes
-rw-r--r--38431-h/images/illus-004.jpgbin0 -> 59794 bytes
5 files changed, 9535 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/38431-h/38431-h.htm b/38431-h/38431-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..039d054
--- /dev/null
+++ b/38431-h/38431-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,9535 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Transitional//EN" "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-transitional.dtd">
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
+<head>
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=utf-8"/>
+ <meta name="generator" content="pph (1.16)"/>
+ <meta name="title" content="The Corner House Girls Snowbound"/>
+ <meta name="author" content="Grace Brooks Hill"/>
+ <meta name="date" content="1919"/>
+ <title>The Corner House Girls Snowbound</title>
+ <style type="text/css">
+ p.center {text-align:center}
+ hr.tb {border:none; border-bottom:1px solid black; width:40%; margin-top:10px; margin-bottom:10px}
+ p.caption {text-align:center; margin-left:20%; margin-right:20%;}
+ h2.chapter {font-size:1.2em; text-align:center; margin: 2em auto 1em auto; font-weight:normal}
+ div.bq {margin-left:10%; margin-right:10%;}
+ </style>
+</head>
+<body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+Project Gutenberg's The Corner House Girls Snowbound, by Grace Brooks Hill
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Corner House Girls Snowbound
+
+Author: Grace Brooks Hill
+
+Illustrator: Thelma Gooch
+
+Release Date: December 28, 2011 [EBook #38431]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: UTF-8
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS SNOWBOUND ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+<div style='text-align:center'>
+<img id='ilink01' src='images/illus-001.jpg' alt=''/>
+<p class='caption'>“The bobsled bumped over these hammocks, gathering speed.”</p>
+</div>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p class='center' style='font-size:1.4em;margin-top:0em;margin-bottom:1em;'>THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS SNOWBOUND</p>
+
+<table style='margin:auto' summary=''>
+<tr><td>
+HOW THEY WENT AWAY<br/>
+WHAT THEY DISCOVERED<br/>
+AND HOW IT ENDED<br/>
+</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<p class='center' style='font-size:1.2em;margin-top:1em;margin-bottom:1em;'>BY GRACE BROOKS HILL</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='font-size:0.8em;margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Author of “The Corner House Girls,” “The Corner</span></p>
+<p class='center' style='font-size:0.8em;margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>House Girls on a Tour,” Etc.</span></p>
+
+<p class='center' style='font-size:1.1em;margin-top:1em;margin-bottom:1em;'><i>ILLUSTRATED BY THELMA GOOCH</i></p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>NEW YORK</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>BARSE &amp; HOPKINS</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>PUBLISHERS</p>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p class='center' style='font-size:1.2em;margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>BOOKS FOR GIRLS</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>By Grace Brooks Hill</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:1em;margin-bottom:0;'>The Corner House Girls Series</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'><i>12mo. Cloth. Illustrated.</i></p>
+
+<table style='margin:auto' summary=''>
+<tr><td>
+THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS<br/>
+THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS AT SCHOOL<br/>
+THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS UNDER CANVAS<br/>
+THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS IN A PLAY<br/>
+THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS’ ODD FIND<br/>
+THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS ON A TOUR<br/>
+THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS GROWING UP<br/>
+THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS SNOWBOUND<br/>
+</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>BARSE &amp; HOPKINS</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>PUBLISHERS—NEW YORK</p>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>Copyright, 1919, by Barse &amp; Hopkins</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'><i>The Corner House Girls Snowbound</i></p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>Printed in U. S. A.</p>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>CONTENTS</p>
+
+<table id='toc' style='margin:auto' summary='TOC'>
+<tr><td>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink01'>I—A Ghost and a Goat</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink02'>II—The Straw Ride</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink03'>III—Twins—And Trouble</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink04'>IV—Anticipations</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink05'>V—Merry Times</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink06'>VI—On the Wings of the Wind</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink07'>VII—The Scooter</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink08'>VIII—The Village on the Ice</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink09'>IX—A Cold Scent</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink10'>X—Into the Wilderness</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink11'>XI—Embers in the Grate</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink12'>XII—Mystery and Fun</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink13'>XIII—The Timber Cruiser</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink14'>XIV—By the Light of the Moon</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink15'>XV—A Variety of Happenings</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink16'>XVI—The Key</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink17'>XVII—All Down Hill</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink18'>XVIII—Figure It Out</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink19'>XIX—Sammy Takes the Bit in His Teeth</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink20'>XX—Following Another Trail</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink21'>XXI—Rowdy</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink22'>XXII—In the Cave</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink23'>XXIII—Anxiety</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink24'>XXIV—Rafe Is Cross</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#clink25'>XXV—Holidays—Conclusion</a><br/>
+</td></tr>
+</table>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>ILLUSTRATIONS</p>
+
+<table id='loi' style='margin:auto' summary=''>
+<tr><td>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#ilink01'>The bobsled bumped over these hummocks, gathering speed</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#ilink02'>Even Ruth could scarcely keep a sober face</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#ilink03'>He fairly dragged her from under the flapping sail</a><br/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<a href='#ilink04'>The housekeeping arrangements of the cave were primitive</a>
+</td></tr>
+</table>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p class='center' style='font-size:1.4em;margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS SNOWBOUND</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink01'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER I—A GHOST AND A GOAT</a></h2>
+
+<p>There was a vast amount of tramping up and
+down stairs, and little feet, well shod, are noisy.
+This padding up and down was by the two flights
+of back stairs from the entry off the kitchen porch
+to the big heated room that was called by the older
+folks who lived in the old Corner House, “the
+nursery.”</p>
+
+<p>“But it isn’t a nursery,” objected Dot Kenway,
+who really was not yet big enough to fit the name
+of “Dorothy.” “We never had a nurse, did we,
+Tess? Ruthie helped bring us up after our own
+truly mamma died. And, then, ‘nursery’ sounds
+so <i>little</i>.”</p>
+
+<p>“Just as though you were kids,” put in Master
+Sammy Pinkney, who lived in the house across
+the street, and nearest, on Willow Street, from
+the Kenway sisters’ beautiful home in Milton, but
+who felt that he, too, “belonged” in the old Corner
+House.</p>
+
+<p>“No. It should be called ‘the playroom,’”
+agreed Tess, who was older than Dot, and considerably
+bigger, yet who no more fitted the name
+she was christened with than the fairylike Dot
+fitted hers. Nobody but Aunt Sarah Maltby—and
+she only when she was in a most severe mood—called
+the next-to-the-youngest Corner House
+girl “Theresa.”</p>
+
+<p>It was Saturday morning, and it had begun to
+snow; at first in a desultory fashion before Tess
+and Dot—or even Sammy Pinkney—were out of
+bed. Of course, they had hailed the fleecy, drifting
+snow with delight; it looked to be the first real
+snowstorm of the season.</p>
+
+<p>But by the time breakfast was well over (and
+breakfast on Saturday morning at the old Corner
+House was a “movable feast,” for the Kenway
+sisters did not all get up so promptly as they did
+on school days) Sammy Pinkney waded almost to
+the top of his rubber boots in coming from his
+house to play with the two younger Kenway sisters.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, Sammy had picked out the deepest
+places to wade in; but the snow really was gathering
+very fast. Mrs. MacCall, the Kenways’ dear
+friend and housekeeper, declared that it was gathering
+and drifting as fast as ever she had seen
+it as a child “at home in the Hielands,” as she
+expressed it.</p>
+
+<p>“’Tis stay-in-the-hoose weather,” the old
+Scotch woman declared. “Roughs and toughs,
+like this Sammy Pinkney boy, can roll in the snow
+like porpoises in the sea; but little girls would
+much better stay indoor and dance ‘Katie
+Beardie.’”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mrs. Mac!” cried Dot, “what is ‘dancing
+Katie Beardie’?”</p>
+
+<p>So the housekeeper stopped long enough in her
+oversight of Linda, the Finnish girl, to repeat the
+old rhyme one hears to this day amid the clatter
+of little clogs upon the pavements of Edinburgh.</p>
+
+<p>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; “‘Katie Beardie had a grice,<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; It could skate upon the ice;<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Wasna that a dainty grice?<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Dance, Katie Beardie!<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Katie Beardie had a hen,<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Cackled but and cackled ben;<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Wasna that a dainty hen?<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Dance, Katie Beardie!’<br/>
+</p>
+
+<p>“and you little ones have been ‘cackling but and
+cackling ben’ ever since breakfast time. Do,
+children, go upstairs, like good bairns, and stay
+awhile.”</p>
+
+<p>Tess and Dot understood a good deal of Mrs.
+MacCall’s Scotch, for they heard it daily. But
+now she had to explain that a “grice” was a pig
+and that “but” and “ben” meant in and out.
+But even Sammy knew how to “count out” in
+Scotch, for they had long since learned Mrs. MacCall’s
+doggerel for games.</p>
+
+<p>Now they played hide and seek, using one of
+the counting-out rhymes the housekeeper had
+taught them:</p>
+
+<p>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Eenerty, feenerty, fickerty, faig,<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Ell, dell, domen, aig.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Irky, birky, story, rock,<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Ann, tan, touzelt Jock.<br/>
+</p>
+
+<p>And then Sammy disappeared! It was Dot’s
+turn to be “it,” and she counted one hundred five
+times by the method approved, saying very rapidly:
+“Ten, ten, double-ten, forty-five and fifteen!”
+Then she began to hunt.</p>
+
+<p>She found Tess in the wardrobe in the hall
+which led to the other ell of the big house. But
+Sammy! Why, it was just as though he had flown
+right out of existence!</p>
+
+<p>Tess was soon curious, too, and aided her sister
+in the search, and they hunted the three floors
+of the old Corner House, and it did not seem as
+though any small boy could be small enough to
+hide in half the places into which the girls looked
+for Sammy Pinkney!</p>
+
+<p>Dot was a persistent and faithful searcher after
+more things than one. If there was anything she
+really wanted, or wanted to know, she always
+stuck to it until she had accomplished her end—or
+driven everybody else in the house, as Agnes
+said, into spasms.</p>
+
+<p>With her Alice-doll hugged in the crook of one
+arm—the Alice-doll was her chiefest treasure—Dot
+hunted high and low for the elusive Sammy
+Pinkney. Of course, occasional household happenings
+interfered with the search; but Dot took
+up the quest again as soon as these little
+happenings were over, for Sammy still remained in hiding.</p>
+
+<p>For instance, Alfredia Blossom and one of her
+brothers came with the family wash in a big basket
+with which they had struggled through the
+snowdrifts. Of course they had to be taken into
+the kitchen and warmed and fed on seed cookies.
+The little boy began to play with Mainsheet, one
+of the cats, but Alfredia, the little girls took upstairs
+with them in their continued hunt for
+Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“Wha’ fur all dis traipsin’ an’ traipsin’ up
+dese stairs?” demanded a deep and unctuous voice
+from the dark end of the hall where the uncarpeted
+stairs rose to the garret landing.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Uncle Rufus!” chorused the little white
+girls, and:</p>
+
+<p>“Howdy, Gran’pop?” said Alfredia, her face
+one broad grin.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, if dat ain’ de beatenes’!” declared the
+aged negro who was the Kenways’ man-of-all-work.
+“Heah you chillen is behin’ me, an’ I sho’
+thought yo’ all mus’ be on ahaid of me. I sho’
+did!”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, no, Uncle Rufus; <i>here</i> we are,” said
+Dot.</p>
+
+<p>“I see yo’ is, honey. I see yo’,” he returned,
+chuckling gleefully. “How’s Pechunia, Alfredia?
+Spry?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir,” said his grandchild, bobbing her
+head on which the tightly braided “pigtails” stood
+out like the rays of a very black sun. “Mammy’s
+all right.”</p>
+
+<p>“But who’s been trackin’ up all dese stairs, if
+’twasn’t yo’ chillen?” demanded the negro, returning
+to the source of his complaint. “Snow
+jes’ eberywhere! Wha’s dat Sam Pinkney?” he
+added suddenly.</p>
+
+<p>“We don’t know, Uncle Rufus,” said Tess
+slowly.</p>
+
+<p>“Sammy went and hid from us, and we can’t
+find him,” explained Dot.</p>
+
+<p>Uncle Rufus pointed a gnarled finger dramatically
+at a blob of snow on the carpet at the foot
+of the garret stairs.</p>
+
+<p>“Dah he is!” he exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” gasped Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“Where, Uncle Rufus?” begged Dorothy, somewhat
+startled.</p>
+
+<p>“Fo’ de lan’s sake!” murmured Alfredia, her
+eyes shining. “He mus’ a done melted most
+away.”</p>
+
+<p>“Dah’s his feetsteps, chillen,” declared the old
+man. “An’ dey come all de way up de two flights
+from de back do’. I been gadderin’ up lumps o’
+snow in dis here shovel—”</p>
+
+<p>He halted with a sharp intake of breath, and
+raised his head to look up the garret stairs. It
+was very dark up there, for the door that opened
+into the great, open room extending the full width
+of the main part of the old Corner House was
+closed. In winter the children seldom went up
+there to play; and Uncle Rufus never mounted
+to the garret at all if he could help it.</p>
+
+<p>“What’s dat?” he suddenly whispered.</p>
+
+<p>“Tap, tap, tap; tap, tap, tap!” went the sound
+that had caught the old man’s attention. It receded,
+then drew nearer, then receded. Uncle
+Rufus turned a face that had suddenly become
+gray toward the three little girls.</p>
+
+<p>“Dat’s—dat’s de same noise used to be up in
+dat garret befo’ your Unc’ Stower die, chillen.
+Ma mercy me!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” squealed Alfredia, turning to run.
+“Dat’s de garret ghos’! I’s heard ma mammy
+tell ’bout dat ol’ ha’nt.”</p>
+
+<p>But Tess seized her and would not let her go.</p>
+
+<p>“That is perfect nonsense, Alfredia!” she said
+very sternly. “There is no such thing as a
+ghost.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’ you be too uppity, chile!” murmured
+Uncle Rufus.</p>
+
+<p>“A ghost!” cried Dot, coming nearer to the
+attic stairs. “Oh, my! What I thought was a
+goat when I was a very little girl? I remember!”</p>
+
+<p>“Dat’s jest de same noise,” murmured Uncle
+Rufus, as the tapping sound was repeated.</p>
+
+<p>“But Ruthie laid that old ghost,” said Tess
+with scorn. “And it wasn’t anything—much.
+But this—”</p>
+
+<p>Dot, who had examined the wet marks and
+lumps of snow on the lower treads of the garret
+stairs, suddenly squealed:</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, looky here! ’Tisn’t a ghost, but ’tis a
+goat! Those are Billy Bumps’ footsteps! Of
+course they are!”</p>
+
+<p>“Sammy Pinkney!” was the chorus of voices,
+even Uncle Rufus joining in. Then he added:</p>
+
+<p>“Dat boy is de beatenes’! How come he make
+dat goat climb all dese stairs?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why,” said Dot, “Billy Bumps can climb right
+up on the roof of the hen houses. He can climb
+just like a—a—well, just like a goat! Coming upstairs
+isn’t anything hard for Billy Bumps.”</p>
+
+<p>“Sammy Pinkney, you come down from there
+with that goat!” commanded Tess sternly.
+“What do you suppose Ruthie or Mrs. MacCall
+will say?”</p>
+
+<p>The door swung open above, and the wan daylight
+which entered by the small garret windows
+revealed Sammy Pinkney, plump, sturdy and
+freckled, stooping to look down at the startled
+group at the top of the stairs.</p>
+
+<p>“I spy Sammy!” cried Dot shrilly, just remembering
+that they were playing hide and seek—or
+had been.</p>
+
+<p>But somebody else spied Sammy at that moment,
+too. The mischievous boy had led Billy
+Bumps, the goat, up three long flights of stairs
+and turned him loose to go tap, tap, tapping about
+the bare attic floor on his hard little hoofs.</p>
+
+<p>Billy spied Sammy as the youth stooped to grin
+down the stairs at Uncle Rufus and the little girls.
+Billy had a hair-trigger temper. He did not
+recognize Sammy from the rear, and he instantly
+charged.</p>
+
+<p>Just as Sammy was going to tell those below
+how happy he was because he had startled them,
+Billy Bumps dashed out of the garret and butted
+the unsuspicious boy. Sammy sailed right into
+the air, arms and legs spread like a jumping frog,
+and dived down the stairway, while Billy stood
+blatting and shaking his horns at the head of the
+flight.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink02'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER II—THE STRAW RIDE</a></h2>
+
+<p>Uncle Rufus and Alfredia had fallen back from
+the foot of the stairs under the impression that
+it was the garret ghost, rather than the garret
+goat, that was charging the mischievous Sammy
+Pinkney. And the two smallest Corner House
+girls were much too small to catch Sammy in full
+flight.</p>
+
+<p>So it certainly would have gone hard with that
+youngster had not other and more able hands intervened.
+There was a shout from behind Uncle
+Rufus, an echoing bark, and a lean boy with a
+big dog dashed into the forefront of this exciting
+adventure.</p>
+
+<p>The boy, if tall and slender, was muscular
+enough. Indeed, Neale O’Neil was a trained
+athlete, having begun his training very young
+indeed with his uncle, Mr. William Sorber, of
+Twomley and Sorber’s Herculean Circus and
+Menagerie. As the big Newfoundland dog
+charged upstairs to hold back the goat, Neale,
+with outspread arms, met Sammy in mid-air.</p>
+
+<p>Neale staggered back, clutching the small boy,
+and finally tripped and fell on the carpet of the
+hall. But he was not hurt, nor was Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“Fo’ de good lan’ sake!” gasped Uncle Rufus,
+“what is we a-comin’ to? A goat in de attic, an’—Tessie!
+yo’ call off dat dog or he’ll eat Billy
+Bumps, complete an’ a-plenty!”</p>
+
+<p>The big dog was barking vociferously, while
+the goat stamped his hoofs and shook his horns
+threateningly at the head of the flight of stairs.
+Tom Jonah and Billy Bumps never had been
+friends.</p>
+
+<p>Tess called the old dog down while Sammy and
+Neale O’Neil scrambled up from the hall floor.
+Two older girls appeared, running from the front
+of the house—a blonde beauty with fluffy, braided
+hair, and a more sedate brunette who was older
+than her sister by two years or more.</p>
+
+<p>“What <i>is</i> the matter?” demanded the blonde
+girl. “If this Corner House isn’t the noisiest
+place in Milton—Ruth, see that goat!”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, Sammy!” exclaimed Ruth Kenway, severely,
+“why didn’t you bring Scalawag, the pony,
+into the house as well? That goat!”</p>
+
+<p>“I was goin’ to,” confessed the rather abashed
+Sammy. “But I didn’t have time.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t you ever do such a thing again, Sammy
+Pinkney!” ordered Ruth, severely.</p>
+
+<p>She had to be severe. Otherwise the younger
+ones would have completely overrun the old Corner
+House and made it unlivable for more sedate
+and quiet folk.</p>
+
+<p>The responsibility for the welfare of her three
+sisters and that of Aunt Sarah Maltby, who lived
+with them, had early fallen on Ruth Kenway’s
+shoulders. In a much larger city than Milton
+the Kenways had lived in a very poor tenement
+and had had a hard struggle to get along on a
+small pension, their mother and father both being
+dead, until Mr. Howbridge, administrator of
+Uncle Peter Stower’s estate, had looked the sisters
+up.</p>
+
+<p>At that time there was some uncertainty as to
+whom the old Corner House, standing opposite the
+Parade Ground in Milton, and the rest of the
+Stower property belonged; for Uncle Peter
+Stower had died, and his will could not be found.
+That there was a will, Mr. Howbridge knew, for
+he had drawn it for the miserly old man who had
+lived alone with his colored servant, Uncle Rufus,
+in the old Corner House for so long.</p>
+
+<p>The surrogate, however, finally allowed the
+guardian of the Kenway sisters to place them in
+the roomy old house, with their aunt and with
+Mrs. MacCall as housekeeper, while the court
+tangle was straightened out. This last was satisfactorily
+arranged, as related in the first book of
+this series, entitled “The Corner House Girls.”</p>
+
+<div style='text-align:center'>
+<img id='ilink02' src='images/illus-002.jpg' alt=''/>
+<p class='caption'>“Even Ruth could scarcely keep a sober face.”</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>In successive volumes are related in detail the
+adventures of the four sisters and their friends
+since their establishment in the old Corner House,
+telling of their adventures at school, in a summer
+camp at the seashore, of their taking part in a
+school play, of the odd find made in the old
+Corner House garret, and on an automobile tour
+through the State.</p>
+
+<p>In that sixth volume of the series the Kenways
+met Luke and Cecile Shepard, brother and sister,
+who prove to be delightful friends, especially to
+Ruth. Agnes, the second Kenway, already had
+a faithful chum and companion in Neale O’Neil.
+But in Luke, Ruth found a most charming acquaintance,
+and in the seventh book, “The Corner
+House Girls Growing Up,” the friendship of
+Ruth and Luke is cemented by a series of incidents
+that try both of their characters.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, each month saw the four sisters that
+many days older. They were actually growing up—“growing
+out of aye ken!” Mrs. MacCall often
+said. Just the same, they still liked fun and
+frolic and, especially the younger ones, were just
+as likely to play pranks as ever.</p>
+
+<p>Even Ruth could scarcely keep a sober face
+when she looked now from Sammy Pinkney’s rueful
+countenance to the goat shaking his head at
+the top of the garret stairs.</p>
+
+<p>“Now,” she said as severely as possible, “I
+would like to know how you intend to get him
+down again.”</p>
+
+<p>“More than that, Sam,” said Neale: “How
+did you ever get him up there?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, that was easy!” declared the small boy,
+his confident grin returning to his freckled face.
+“I got a stick and tied to it one of those old
+cabbages that Uncle Rufus has got packed away
+under the shed. Then,” went on the inventive
+genius, “I went behind Billy and pushed, holding
+the cabbage ahead of his nose. Say, that goat
+would walk up the side of a house, let alone three
+flights of stairs, for a cabbage!”</p>
+
+<p>“Can you beat him?” murmured Neale, vastly
+delighted by this confession.</p>
+
+<p>“I feel sometimes as though I would like to
+beat him,” answered Ruth. “See if you can get
+Billy Bumps out to his proper quarters, Neale.”</p>
+
+<p>But that was not easy, and it took an hour’s
+work and finally the tying of Billy Bumps “hand
+and foot” before the sturdy goat was overcome
+and returned to his pen.</p>
+
+<p>By this time, however, the snow had stopped.
+Lunch was served in the big Corner House dining-room,
+Neale and Sammy being guests.</p>
+
+<p>It was an hilarious meal, of course. With such
+a crowd of young folks about the table—and on
+Saturday, too!—a sedate time was not possible.
+But Ruth tried to keep the younger ones from
+talking too loud or being too careless in their table
+manners.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Sarah Maltby, sitting at one end of the
+table, shook her head solemnly about midway of
+the meal at Sammy Pinkney.</p>
+
+<p>“Young man,” she said in her severest way,
+“what do you suppose will become of you? You
+are the most mischievous boy I have ever seen—and
+I have seen a good many in my time.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes’m,” said Sammy, hanging his head, for
+he was afraid of Aunt Sarah.</p>
+
+<p>“You should think of the future,” admonished
+the old lady. “There is something besides fun
+in this world.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes’m,” again came from the abashed, if not
+repentant, Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“Think what you might make of yourself, young
+man, if you desired. Do you realize that every
+boy born in this country has a chance to be president?”</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” ejaculated Sammy, suddenly looking
+up. “Be president, Miss Maltby? Huh! I tell
+you what: I’ll sell you my chance for a quarter.”</p>
+
+<p>The irrepressible laugh from the other young
+folks that followed might have offended Aunt
+Sarah had not the front door bell rung at that
+very moment. Agnes, who was nearest, and much
+quicker than rheumatic Uncle Rufus, ran to answer
+the summons.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Ruthie!” her clear voice instantly sounded
+as far as the dining-room, “here’s Mr. Howbridge’s
+man, and he’s got a great big sleigh at
+the gate, and—Why, there’s Mr. Howbridge
+himself!”</p>
+
+<p>Not only the oldest Kenway ran to join her sister
+at the door, but all the other young folks
+trooped out. They forgot their plates at the announcement
+of the appearance of the girls’ guardian.</p>
+
+<p>“Did you e’er see such bairns before?”
+demanded the housekeeper of Aunt Sarah. “They
+have neither appetite nor manners on a Saturday!”</p>
+
+<p>In the big front hall the girls and boys were delightedly
+greeting Mr. Howbridge, while the
+coach-man plowed back to the gate through the snow
+to hold the frisky pair of bay horses harnessed
+to the big pung. Bits of straw clung to the lawyer’s
+clothing, and he was rosy and smiling.</p>
+
+<p>“I did not know but what you would already
+be out, young folks,” Mr. Howbridge announced.
+“Although I had John harness up just as soon
+as the weather broke.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Howbridge,” Ruth said, remembering
+her “manners” after all, “won’t you come
+in?”</p>
+
+<p>“Won’t you come out, Miss Ruth?” responded
+the man, laughing.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! <i>Oh!</i> OH!” cried Tess, in crescendo,
+peering out of the open door. “That sleigh of
+Mr. Howbridge’s is full of straw.”</p>
+
+<p>“A straw-ride!” gasped Agnes, clasping her
+hands. “Oh, Mr. Howbridge! have you come to
+take us out?”</p>
+
+<p>“Of course. All of you. The more the merrier,”
+said their guardian, who was very fond
+indeed of his wards and their young friends, and
+missed no chance to give them pleasure.</p>
+
+<p>At that statement there was a perfect rout
+while the young people ran for their wraps and
+overshoes. The dessert was forgotten, although
+it was Mrs. MacCall’s famous “whangdoodle pudding
+and lallygag sauce.”</p>
+
+<p>“Never mind the eats now, Mrs. Mac!” cried
+Agnes, struggling into her warm coat. “Have
+an extra big dinner. We’ll come home tonight as
+hungry as crows—see if we don’t!”</p>
+
+<p>In ten minutes the whole party, the four Kenway
+sisters, Neale, and Sammy, and Tom Jonah,
+had tumbled into the body of the big sleigh which
+was so heaped with clean straw that they burrowed
+right into it just like mice! The big bay
+horses were eager to start, and tossed their heads
+and made the little silver bells on the harness
+jingle to a merry tune indeed.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge and Ruth sat up on the wide
+front seat—the only seat—with the driver, John.
+The guardian wished to talk in private with the
+oldest Kenway girl. He considered her a very
+bright girl, with a very well-balanced mind.</p>
+
+<p>While the younger folks shouted and joked and
+snowballed each other as the horses sped along the
+almost unbroken track, Ruth and her guardian
+were quite seriously engaged in conversation.</p>
+
+<p>“I want to get some good advice from you, Miss
+Ruth Kenway,” said the lawyer, smiling sideways
+at her. “I know that you have an abundant
+supply.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are a flatterer,” declared the girl, her
+eyes sparkling nevertheless. She was always
+proud to be taken into his confidence. “Is it
+something about the estate?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, my dear. Nothing about the Stower estate.”</p>
+
+<p>“I was afraid we might be spending too much
+money,” said the girl, laughing. “You know, I
+do think we are extravagant.”</p>
+
+<p>“Not in your personal expenditures,” answered
+their guardian. “Only in the Kenways’ charities
+do I sometimes feel like putting on the brake.
+But this,” he added, “is something different.”</p>
+
+<p>“What is it, Mr. Howbridge? I am sure I shall
+be glad to help you if I can,” Ruth said earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, now, Miss Ruth,” said the lawyer, a quizzical
+smile wreathing his lips. “What would you
+do, for instance, if a pair of twins had been left
+to you?”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink03'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER III—TWINS—AND TROUBLE</a></h2>
+
+<p>Sometimes Mr. Howbridge called her “Martha,”
+because she was so cumbered with family
+cares. Sometimes he called her “Minerva,” and
+acclaimed her to be wise. He so frequently joked
+with her in this way that Ruth Kenway was not
+at all sure the lawyer was in earnest on this occasion.</p>
+
+<p>“Twins?” she repeated, smiling up at him over
+the top of her muff. “Twin <i>what</i>? Twin puppies,
+or kittens, or even fish? I suppose there are
+twin fish?”</p>
+
+<p>“You joke me, and I am serious,” he said, while
+the younger ones shouted and sang amid the straw
+behind. “I really have had a pair of twins given
+to me. I am their guardian, the administrator of
+their estate, just as I was made administrator of
+the Stower estate and guardian of you girls. It
+is no joke, I assure you,” and he finished rather
+ruefully.</p>
+
+<p>“Goodness me! you don’t mean it?” cried Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I do. I mean it very much. I do, indeed,
+think it rather mean. If all my friends who
+die and go to a better world leave me their children
+to take care of, I shall be in a worse pickle
+than the Little Old Woman Who Lived in the
+Shoe.”</p>
+
+<p>“Like old Mrs. Bobster at Pleasant Cove,”
+laughed Ruth. “But even she did not have twins.
+And if your new family is as troublesome as the
+Corner House crowd, what will you ever do?”</p>
+
+<p>“That is what I am asking you, Minerva,” he
+said seriously. “What would you do if you had
+had twins left to you?”</p>
+
+<p>“What are they, Mr. Howbridge? Boys or
+girls?”</p>
+
+<p>“Both.”</p>
+
+<p>“Both? Oh! You mean one is a boy and one is
+a girl.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ralph and Rowena Birdsall.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is better than having two of either sex,
+I should say,” Ruth observed with more gravity.
+“They sort of—sort of balance each other.”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess they are ‘some kids,’ as our friend
+Neale would say,” suddenly laughed Mr. Howbridge.
+“I knew Birdsall very well. I might
+say we were very close friends, both socially and
+in business. Poor fellow! The last two years
+of his life were very sad indeed.”</p>
+
+<p>“Has he left plenty for the twins?” asked Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“More than ‘plenty,’” said Mr. Howbridge.
+“He was very, very wealthy. Ralph and Rowena
+will come into very large fortunes when they are
+of age. The money is well invested.”</p>
+
+<p>“Then you need not worry about that,” Ruth
+said sedately.</p>
+
+<p>“No? The more money, the more worry for
+the administrator and guardian,” Mr. Howbridge
+said succinctly. “I can assure you that is true.
+But it is what to do for, and with, the twins themselves
+that bothers me most just at first.”</p>
+
+<p>“How old are they?”</p>
+
+<p>“About twelve. Nice age! All legs and arms
+and imagination.”</p>
+
+<p>“Dear me! Do you know them well?”</p>
+
+<p>“Haven’t seen them since they were two little
+red mites in their cradle.”</p>
+
+<p>“Then you merely imagine they are so very terrible.”</p>
+
+<p>“I heard enough about them from Frank, Frank
+Birdsall. That was their father’s name. He
+used to be very fond of talking about them. Proud
+as Lucifer, he was, of Ralph and Rowena. And
+his wife—”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Of course, the mother is dead, too.”</p>
+
+<p>“That was what killed Frank, I verily believe,”
+said Mr. Howbridge gravely. “She died two
+years ago at a camp he owned up near the Canadian
+border. Red Deer Lodge it is called. Mrs.
+Birdsall was flung from her horse.</p>
+
+<p>“It crushed her husband. He brought the children
+away from there (they had spent much of
+their time up in the wilderness, for they loved it)
+and never went back again.</p>
+
+<p>“That’s another piece of work he’s left me.
+Because he did not want ever to see the Lodge
+again, I have to go up there—now, in mid-winter—and
+attend to something that’s been hanging
+fire too long already. It is a nuisance.”</p>
+
+<p>“A camp in the woods in mid-winter must be
+an enjoyable place,” Ruth said thoughtfully.
+“You can take your guns; and you can snowshoe;
+can skate; maybe—”</p>
+
+<p>“And, as our good Mrs. Mac would say, eat
+fried snowballs and icicle soup!” finished Mr.
+Howbridge. “Ugh! It’s a fine place, Red Deer
+Lodge, but I shall take only my man and we’ll
+have to depend on some old guide or trapper to
+do for us. No, I look forward to no pleasant
+time at Red Deer Lodge, I assure you.”</p>
+
+<p>This conversation was not carried on in sequence.
+The party in the body of the sleigh frequently
+interrupted. Sammy managed to dance
+all over the sleigh, and half a dozen times he was
+on the point of pitching out into the drifts.</p>
+
+<p>“Let him!” snapped Agnes at last. “Let him
+be buried in the snow, and we won’t stop for him—not
+until we come back.”</p>
+
+<p>“The poor kid would be an icicle then,” objected
+Neale O’Neil.</p>
+
+<p>“And he’d miss the nice hot chocolate and buns
+Mr. Howbridge says we are to have at Crowder’s
+Inn,” put in Tess, the thoughtful.</p>
+
+<p>Dot squeezed her Alice-doll close to her little
+bosom and made up her mind that that precious
+possession should not pop out by accident into a
+drift and be left behind.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t suppose I should have brought her,”
+Dot confessed to Tess. “I should have given the
+sailor-boy baby an airing instead.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, yes! Nosmo King Kenway,” murmured
+her sister.</p>
+
+<p>Dot hurried on, ignoring the suggestive name of
+the sailor-boy baby who had been inadvertently
+christened after a sign on a barn door.</p>
+
+<p>“You know,” the smallest Corner House girl
+said, “Alice’s complexion is so delicate. Of
+course, Neale had her all made over in the doll’s
+hospital; but I am always afraid that the wind
+will crack it.”</p>
+
+<p>“I wouldn’t worry so about her, Dot,” advised
+Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“You would if Alice were your baby,” declared
+Dot. “And you know she is delicate. She’s
+never been the same since Lillie Treble buried
+her with the dried apples in our back yard.”</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile Neale O’Neil had caught a sentence
+or two flung back by the wind from the high front
+seat. He bobbed up between Mr. Howbridge and
+Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“What’s all this about red deer, and snowshoes,
+and eating icicle soup?” he asked. “Sounds awfully
+interesting. Are you planning to go hunting,
+Mr. Howbridge?”</p>
+
+<p>“I’ve got to go to a hunting lodge, clear up
+state, my boy,” said the lawyer. “And I dread
+it just as much as you young folks would enjoy
+it.”</p>
+
+<p>“It would be fine, I think,” murmured Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, bully!” shouted Agnes, suddenly standing
+up in the straw and clinging to Neale for support.
+“To a regular, sure-enough winter camp?
+Then Carrie and Lucy Poole, and Trix Severn
+can’t crow over us any more! They went, last
+year, to Letterbeg Camp, up beyond Hoosac.”</p>
+
+<p>“But, goodness, Agnes, wait till we are asked,
+do!” admonished Ruth. “I never saw or heard of
+such precipitate young ones.”</p>
+
+<p>“Young one yourself!” grumbled Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“It’s my fault,” said the good-natured Neale.
+“Aggie misunderstood what I said.”</p>
+
+<p>“No need to worry about it,” said Mr. Howbridge
+cheerfully. “If you young folks really
+want to come with me—”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Howbridge!” exclaimed Ruth, in a
+tone that showed she, herself, had been much
+taken with the idea.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, I hate to go alone. I can send up some
+servants to open the Lodge. Frank was always
+begging me to make use of it. After Mrs. Birdsall
+was killed he never would go near the place, as I
+said. Though I believe the twins, Ralph and
+Rowena, have been up there with a caretaker and
+a governess, or somebody to look out for them.”</p>
+
+<p>“Where are they now?” asked Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“The Birdsall place in Arlington was closed
+soon after Frank died, three months ago. His old
+butler and his wife live in a nice home near by,
+and they have the children and their governess
+with them.”</p>
+
+<p>“With just servants?” murmured Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“They are very suitable people,” declared Mr.
+Howbridge, as though he felt the faint criticism
+in the girl’s words. “I went myself and saw
+Rodgers and Mrs. Rodgers. The governess and
+the twins were out for a drive, so I did not see
+them.”</p>
+
+<p>“The poor things!” sighed Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“My!” exclaimed Agnes, “those children are
+worse off than we Kenways were. They haven’t
+got anybody like Ruth, Mr. Howbridge.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is true,” agreed the lawyer. “But what
+am I to do? Separate them? Send them to
+boarding school—the boy one way and the girl
+another?”</p>
+
+<p>“Gee! that would be tough, Mr. Howbridge,”
+declared Neale O’Neil, with considerable feeling
+for the unfortunate twins.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t see what I’m to do,” complained the
+lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“They should have a real home,” Ruth stated,
+with some severity. “Sending them to boarding
+school is dodging the issue. So is leaving them
+wholly in the care of servants.”</p>
+
+<p>“Who would take in two tearing and wearing
+children, twelve years old?” demanded Mr. Howbridge,
+on the defensive.</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps the fault does go back to the parents—to
+the father, at least,” admitted Ruth. “He
+should have made provision for his children before
+he died.”</p>
+
+<p>“I suppose you think the duty devolves upon
+me,” said Mr. Howbridge, rather grumpily.
+“Should I take them into my house? Should I
+break up the habits of years for two half-wild
+children?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I don’t know that,” Ruth told him brightly.
+“It’s one of those things one must decide for oneself,
+isn’t it?”</p>
+
+<p>There was not much more said after that during
+the ride about the twins, Ralph and Rowena
+Birdsall. But Red Deer Lodge!</p>
+
+<p>The idea of going to a real camp in winter was
+taken up by everybody in the party, for even Tom
+Jonah barked. In the depths of the wilderness,
+with wild woods, and wild animals, and perhaps
+wild men! (this in Sammy’s mind) all about the
+Lodge! The freckled boy considered the idea even
+superior to his long cherished desire to run away
+to be a pirate.</p>
+
+<p>“I’ll get me a bow-arrer and learn to shoot before
+we start,” Sammy declared, deluding himself,
+as he always did, with the idea that he was to
+be a member of the party in any case.</p>
+
+<p>“But you don’t even know if your mother’ll let
+you go, Sammy Pinkney!” cried Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“She’ll let me go if Aggie says I may,” declared
+Sammy. “I can, can’t I, Aggie?” grabbing
+her by her plaid skirt and almost pulling her
+over backwards.</p>
+
+<p>“Stop! You can can that!” declared the next-to-the-oldest
+Corner House girl slangily. “What
+do you think I am—a bell rope, that you yank me
+that way?”</p>
+
+<p>“I can go to that Red Deer Lodge, can’t I?”
+insisted the youngster.</p>
+
+<p>“You can start right now, for all I care,” said
+Agnes, rather grumpily, and giving Sammy no
+further attention.</p>
+
+<p>But that was enough for Sammy Pinkney. He
+considered that he had a particular invitation to
+accompany the party into the woods, and he would
+tell his mother so when he reached home.</p>
+
+<p>But Dot began to be worried.</p>
+
+<p>“Just see here, Tess Kenway!” she exclaimed
+suddenly. “Do you suppose my Alice-doll—or
+any of the other dollies—can stand it?”</p>
+
+<p>“Stand what?” her sister, quite excited, asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Living in tents in winter?”</p>
+
+<p>“In what tents?” asked the amazed Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“Up there at Red Darling Camp—”</p>
+
+<p>“Red <i>Deer</i>!”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I knew it was some nice word,” Dot, undisturbed,
+said. “But Alice is so delicate.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, Dot Kenway! we won’t have to live in
+tents,” said Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“We did in that other camp we went to,” said
+the smaller girl. “Don’t you ’member? And
+the tent ’most blowed over one night, and you
+and I and Tom Jonah went sailing in a boat?
+And that clam man—”</p>
+
+<p>“But, Dot!” cried Tess, “that was a summer
+camp. This is a winter one. And it’s all made
+of logs, and there are doors and windows and fireplaces
+and—and everything!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” murmured Dot. “I wondered how
+they’d keep Jack Frost out. And he’s stinging
+my ears right now, Tess Kenway.”</p>
+
+<p>The roadside inn was in sight now, and presently
+the big sleigh pulled up before it with the
+bells jangling and the horses steaming, as Dot
+remarked, “just as though they had boiling water
+in ’em and the smoke was leaking out.”</p>
+
+<p>The whole party ran into the grillroom and
+chased Jack Frost away with hot chocolate and
+cakes. There the idea of going to Red Deer
+Lodge for the Christmas holidays was well
+thrashed out.</p>
+
+<p>“Of course, I will send up my own servants and
+supplies. Being administrator of the estate, there
+will be no question of my using the Lodge as I see
+fit,” Mr. Howbridge said cheerfully. “And I
+shall be delighted to have you young folks with me.</p>
+
+<p>“I am really going to confer with an old timber
+cruiser about the standing timber contracted for
+by the Neven Lumber Company before Frank
+Birdsall died. This timber cruiser—”</p>
+
+<p>“It sounds like a sea-story!” interrupted Agnes,
+roguishly.</p>
+
+<p>“What is a timber cruiser?” demanded Ruth,
+quite as puzzled as her sister.</p>
+
+<p>“It is not a ‘what’ but a ‘who,’” laughed Mr.
+Howbridge. “In his way, Ike M’Graw is quite
+a famous character up there. A timber cruiser
+is a man who knows timber so well that just by
+walking through a wood lot and looking he can
+number and mark down the trees that are sound
+and will make good timber.</p>
+
+<p>“Ike has written me through a friend (for the
+old man cannot use a pen himself, save to make
+his cross) that he has been over the entire Birdsall
+estate and that his figures and the figures of the
+Nevens people are too far apart. I fear that the
+lumber company is trying to put something over
+on me, and as administrator of the estate I must
+look out for the twins’ interests.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are more careful of their money, Mr. Howbridge,
+than you are of the twins themselves, are
+you not?” Ruth suggested, in a low voice.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, don’t tell me that!” he cried. “I really
+cannot take those children into my house.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, you know,” she told him, smiling, “you
+brought this on yourself by asking my advice.
+And you intend to fill that Lodge up there with us
+‘young ones.’”</p>
+
+<p>“But I shall have you to manage for me, Miss
+Ruth,” declared the lawyer. “That is different.”</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps we might take the twins along with
+us, and you’d get used to them,” Ruth said.
+“You say they like it up there in the wilderness.”</p>
+
+<p>“Frank said they were crazy about it.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well?”</p>
+
+<p>“You don’t know what you are letting yourselves
+in for. Ralph and Rowena are young savages.”</p>
+
+<p>“Can’t be much worse than Sammy, yonder,”
+chuckled Neale, who, with Agnes, was much interested
+in this part of the planning.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Ruthie!” exclaimed the second Kenway
+sister suddenly, clasping her hands. “There’s
+Cecile and Luke!”</p>
+
+<p>“Where—what—?”</p>
+
+<p>“I mean we invited them to come to the Corner
+House for the holidays.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ah-ha!” exclaimed Mr. Howbridge promptly.
+“The Shepards? Of course! I had already included
+them—in my mind.”</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Howbridge! It will be more than a party.
+It will be a convention,” gasped Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“It’s such a lonely place that we’ll need a big
+crowd to make it worth while going at all,” the
+lawyer laughed. “Yes. Cecile and Luke are invited.
+I will have them written to at once—in
+addition to your own invitation to them, Miss
+Ruth.”</p>
+
+<p>“Dear me! you are just the best guardian, Mr.
+Howbridge,” sighed Agnes ecstatically.</p>
+
+<p>“And I think,” Ruth added, “that you ought
+to think seriously of taking the Birdsall twins
+with us.”</p>
+
+<p>That was not decided at that time, however.
+And when the party got back to the old Corner
+House, just across from the Parade Ground at
+the head of Main Street, Mr. Howbridge was met
+with a piece of news that shocked him much more
+than had the thought of the twins making their
+home with him in his quiet bachelor residence.</p>
+
+<p>A clerk from the lawyer’s office awaited Mr.
+Howbridge. There was a telegram from Rodgers,
+the Birdsalls’ ex-butler. It read:</p>
+
+<div class='bq'>
+<p>“Ralph and Rowena away since yesterday noon. Hospitals searched.
+Cannot have pond dragged. Two feet of ice. Wire instructions.</p>
+<p style='text-align:right; margin:0 0ex 0 auto'>—Rodgers.”</p>
+</div>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink04'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER IV—ANTICIPATIONS</a></h2>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge, before he hurried away to his
+office, asked Ruth:</p>
+
+<p>“What do you think of that? And you suggest
+my keeping those twins—those two wild youngsters—in
+my home!”</p>
+
+<p>“I will tell you what I think of that telegram,”
+said the oldest Kenway girl, handing the yellow
+sheet of paper back to him. “I think that man
+Rodgers is not a fit person to have charge of the
+boy and girl.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why not?” he asked in surprise.</p>
+
+<p>“Imagine thinking of dragging a pond in mid-winter—or
+at any other time of the year—for two
+healthy children! First idea the man seems to
+have. I guess the twins had reason for running
+away.”</p>
+
+<p>“Hear! Hear!” cried Agnes, who deliberately
+listened.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, they have known Rodgers all their
+lives!”</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps that is why they have run away,”
+said Ruth, smiling. “Rodgers sounds to me—from
+his telegram—as though he had one awful
+lack.”</p>
+
+<p>“You frighten me. What lack?”</p>
+
+<p>“Lack of a sense of humor. And that is fatal
+in the character of anybody who has a pair of twins
+on his hands.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge threw up his own hands in
+amazement. “I must lack that myself,” he said.
+“I see nothing funny, at least, in the idea of having
+Ralph and Rowena Birdsall in my house.”</p>
+
+<p>“It helps,” said Ruth. “A sense of humor is
+what has kept me going all these years,” she
+added demurely. “If you think a pair of twins
+can be compared to Tess and Dot and Sammy
+Pinkney—to say nothing of Aggie and Neale—”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” shouted the two latter in chorus.</p>
+
+<p>“You have a mean mind, Ruthie Kenway,” declared
+the blonde beauty.</p>
+
+<p>“I knew I wasn’t much liked,” admitted Neale
+O’Neil. “But that is the unkindest cut of all.”</p>
+
+<p>“You have had experience, I grant you,” said
+Mr. Howbridge, about to take his departure.
+“But I foresee much trouble in the case of these
+Birdsall twins.”</p>
+
+<p>And he was a true prophet there. The twins
+had utterly disappeared. The Arlington police—indeed,
+all the county officers together—could find
+no trace of the orphaned brother and sister.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge put private detectives on the
+case. The twins seemed to have disappeared as
+utterly as though they really were under the two
+feet of ice on Arlington Pond.</p>
+
+<p>The lawyer searched personally, advertised in
+the newspapers, and even offered a reward for the
+apprehension of the children. A fortnight passed
+without success.</p>
+
+<p>The governess, Miss Mason, was discharged,
+for it seemed unnecessary to pay her salary when
+there were no children for her to teach. Rodgers
+and his wife could give no aid in the search. They
+were rather relieved, if the truth were told, to be
+free of the twins.</p>
+
+<p>“Master Ralph was hard enough to get along
+with,” the ex-butler admitted. “But Miss Rowena
+was worse. They wanted to go back into
+their own house to live. They could not understand
+why it was shut up, sir,” and the old serving
+man shook his head.</p>
+
+<p>“They seemed to have taken a dislike to you,
+sir,” he added to Mr. Howbridge. “They said
+you ‘hadn’t any right to boss.’ That is the way
+they put it.”</p>
+
+<p>“But I never even saw them,” returned the
+lawyer. “I didn’t try ‘to boss’ them.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, you know, sir,” Rodgers explained, “I
+had to give ’em reasons for things. You have to
+with children like Master Ralph and Miss Rowena.
+So I had to tell ’em you said they were to do this
+and that.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Ah! I see!” muttered the guardian.</p>
+
+<p>He began to believe that perhaps Ruth Kenway
+was right. He should have taken more of
+a personal interest in Ralph and Rowena. They
+had evidently gained from the ex-butler an
+entirely wrong impression of what a guardian was.</p>
+
+<p>But the disappearance of the Birdsall twins did
+not make any change in the plans for the mid-winter
+visit to Red Deer Lodge. Mr. Howbridge
+had to go there in any case, and he would not
+disappoint the Kenways and their friends.</p>
+
+<p>As it chanced, full three weeks were given the
+Milton schools at the Christmas Holiday time.
+There were repairs to make in the heating arrangements
+of both high and grammar school
+buildings. The schools would close the week before
+Christmas and not open again until the week
+following New Year’s Day.</p>
+
+<p>If Sammy Pinkney had had his way, the schools
+would never have opened again!</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t see what they have to learn you things
+for, anyway,” complained the youngster. “You
+can find things out for yourself.”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s rather an expensive way to learn, I’ve
+always heard,” said Ruth, admonishingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” grumbled Sammy, “teachers don’t
+know much, anyway. Look! There’s what Miss
+Grimsby told us in physics the other day—all
+about what you’re made of, and how you’re made,
+and the names you can call yourself—if you want
+to.</p>
+
+<p>“You know: Your legs and arms are <i>limbs</i>—and
+all that. She told us the middle part of our
+bodies is the <i>trunk</i>, and she asked us all if we understood
+that. Some said ‘yes,’ and some didn’t
+say nothing,” went on the excited boy.</p>
+
+<p>“‘Don’t you know the middle of the body is
+the trunk?’ she asked Patsy Roach. And what do
+you suppose he told Miss Grimsby?”</p>
+
+<p>“I can’t imagine,” said Agnes, for this was in
+the evening and the young people were gathered
+about the sitting-room table with their lesson
+books.</p>
+
+<p>“He told her: ‘You ought to go to the circus,
+Miss Grimsby, and see the elephant,’” giggled
+Sammy. “And I guess Patsy was right. Huh!
+<i>Trunk!</i>” he added with scorn.</p>
+
+<p>“Association of ideas,” chuckled Neale O’Neil,
+who was likewise present as usual during home
+study hour. “I heard that one of the kids in
+Dot’s grade gave Miss Andrews an extremely
+bright answer the other day.”</p>
+
+<p>“What was that, Neale?” asked Agnes, who
+would rather talk than study at any time.</p>
+
+<p>“History. Miss Andrews asked one little girl
+who discovered America, and the answer was,
+‘Ohio’!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” murmured Agnes, while even Ruth
+smiled.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” chuckled Neale. “Miss Andrews said,
+‘No; Columbus discovered America,’ and the kid
+said: ‘Yes’m. That was his first name.’”</p>
+
+<p>“She got her geography and history mixed,”
+said Ruth, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>“That was Sadie Goronofsky’s half-sister,
+Becky,” explained Dot. “She isn’t very bright.”</p>
+
+<p>“You bet she isn’t bright!” snorted Sammy
+Pinkney. “Her pop’s got a little tailor shop with
+another man down on Meadow Street, and they
+are always fighting.”</p>
+
+<p>“Who are always fighting?” asked Neale quizzically.
+“Becky and her father or Becky and her
+father’s partner?”</p>
+
+<p>“Smartie! Becky’s pop and the other man,”
+answered Sammy. “And their landlord was putting
+in a new store-front, and Becky’s father put
+out a sign telling folks they were still working—<i>you</i>
+know. Becky said it read: ‘Business going
+on during altercations,’ instead of ‘alterations.’
+And ‘altercations’ means fights,” concluded the
+wise Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“Just see,” remarked Ruth quietly, “how satisfied
+you children should be that you know so much
+more than your little mates. You so frequently
+bring home tales about them.”</p>
+
+<p>“Aw, now, Ruth,” mumbled Sammy, who was
+bright enough to note her characteristic criticism.</p>
+
+<p>“I would try,” the oldest Kenway said admonishingly,
+“to bring home only the pleasant stories
+about my little school friends.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! <i>I</i> know a nice story about Allie Newman’s
+little brother,” declared Dot eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>“That little terror!” murmured Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“He is one tough little kid,” admitted Neale
+O’Neil, in an undertone.</p>
+
+<p>“What about the little Newman boy?” asked
+Ruth indulgently. “And then we must all study.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why,” said Dot, big-eyed and very much in
+earnest, “you know Robbie Newman doesn’t go to
+school yet; and he’s an awful trial to his mother.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is gossip, Dot,” Tess interposed severely.</p>
+
+<p>But the smallest Corner House girl was not to
+be derailed from the main line of her story, and
+went right on:</p>
+
+<p>“He was naughty the other day and his mamma
+told him she’d shut him up somewhere all by himself.
+‘If you do, Mamma,’ he said, ‘I’ll just smash
+ev’rything in the room.’”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh-oo!” gasped Tess, proving herself to be
+quite as much interested in the “gossip” as the
+others around the evening lamp. “What a wicked
+boy!”</p>
+
+<p>“But he didn’t smash anything,” Dot was quick
+to explain. “For his mother put him right out
+in the henhouse.”</p>
+
+<p>“The henhouse! Fancy!” said Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“There wasn’t anything for him to smash
+there,” said Dot. “But when she had locked him
+in, Robbie put his head out of the little door
+where the hens go in and out, and he called after
+her:</p>
+
+<p>“‘Mamma, you can lock me in here all you want
+to; but I won’t lay any eggs!’”</p>
+
+<p>“I am not sure that it isn’t gossip,” chuckled
+Agnes, when the general laugh had subsided.</p>
+
+<p>“That will be all now,” Ruth said with severity.
+“Study time is here.”</p>
+
+<p>But there was another and more important
+subject in all their minds than either school happenings,
+the eccentricities of their friends, or the lesson
+books themselves.</p>
+
+<p>The holidays! The thought of going to Red
+Deer Lodge! A winter vacation in the deep
+woods, and to live in “picnic” fashion, as they
+supposed, lent a charm to the plan that delighted
+every member of the Corner House party.</p>
+
+<p>Ruth and Agnes wrote to the Shepards—to Cecile
+at home with her Aunt Lorena, and to Luke
+at college—and they were immediately enamored
+of the plan and returned enthusiastic acceptances
+of the invitation, thanking Mr. Howbridge, of
+course, as well.</p>
+
+<p>The lawyer was having a great deal to do at this
+time, and he came to the old Corner House more
+than once to talk about the Birdsall twins to Ruth
+and the others. As he said, it gave him comfort
+to talk over something he did not know anything
+about with the oldest Corner House sister.</p>
+
+<p>He sat one stormy day in the cozy sitting-room,
+with Dot and the Alice-doll on one knee and Tess
+and Almira, who was now a quite grown-up cat
+and had kittens of her own, on his other knee.
+All the Corner House cats were pets, no matter
+how grown-up they were.</p>
+
+<p>“It is worrying me a great deal, Ruthie,” he
+said to the sympathetic girl. “Look at a day like
+this. We don’t know where those poor children
+are. Rodgers says they could have had but little
+money. In fact, they scarcely knew what money
+was for, having always had everything needful
+supplied them.”</p>
+
+<p>“Twelve-year-old children nowadays, Mr. Howbridge,”
+said Ruth, “are usually quite capable of
+looking after themselves.”</p>
+
+<p>“You think so?” queried the worried guardian.</p>
+
+<p>“You remember what Agnes was at twelve.
+And look at our Tess.”</p>
+
+<p>The lawyer pinched Tess’ cheek. “I see what
+she is. And she is going to be twelve some day,
+I suppose,” he agreed. “But what would she
+and—say—Sammy Pinkney do, turned out alone
+into the world?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” cried Dot, the little pitcher with the big
+ears, “Sammy and I went off alone to be pirates.
+And I’m younger than Tess.”</p>
+
+<p>“I hope I shouldn’t run away with Sammy!”
+said Tess, in some disdain.</p>
+
+<p>“Why,” Dot put in, “suppose Sammy was your
+brother? I felt quite sisterly to him that time
+we were hid in the canalboat.”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess that we all feel ‘sisterly’ to Sammy,”
+laughed Ruth. “And I am sure, Tess, you would
+know what to do if you were away from home
+with him.”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess I would,” agreed Tess severely. “I’d
+march him right back again.”</p>
+
+<p>The lawyer joined in the laugh. But he was
+none the less anxious about Ralph and Rowena
+Birdsall. There was an undercurrent of feeling
+in his mind, too, that he had been derelict in his
+duty toward his wards.</p>
+
+<p>“Three months after their father died, and I
+had not seen them,” he said more than once. “I
+blame myself. As you say, Ruth, I should have
+won their confidence in that time.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Howbridge, you are not to blame for
+that! You are unused to children, anyway.”</p>
+
+<p>“But it was selfishness on my part—arrant selfishness,
+Frank’s children should have been my
+personal care. But, twins!” and he groaned.</p>
+
+<p>One might have been amused by his bachelor
+horror of the thought of two children in his quiet
+home; only the situation was really too serious
+to breed laughter. Two twelve-year-old children
+striking out into the world for themselves might
+get into all sorts of mischief and trouble.</p>
+
+<p>The lawyer had done all he could, however, toward
+recovering the runaways. The police of two
+States were on the watch for them, and private detectives
+were likewise hunting for them. The advertisements
+Mr. Howbridge put in the papers
+brought no helpful replies. There seemed to be
+many children wandering about the country, singly
+and in pairs, but none of them answered at
+all the description of the Birdsall twins.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile the Christmas holidays were approaching.
+Cecile Shepard arrived at the old
+Corner House a week ahead of the date set for
+the closing of school. Luke, however, would join
+the party at Culberton, at the foot of Long Lake,
+nearly at the far end of which, and deep in the
+woods, was Red Deer Lodge.</p>
+
+<p>Cecile was a very pretty girl, as dark as Agnes
+was light. She went to school every day with
+Agnes and sat beside her as a “visitor” during
+the remainder of the term.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, there was much to do to prepare for
+this mid-winter venture into the woods. And,
+too, there were certain plans for Christmas to be
+carried out by the Corner House girls, whether
+they were to be at home on Christmas Day or not.</p>
+
+<p>The Stower estate tenants on Meadow Street
+must not be forgotten.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink05'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER V—MERRY TIMES</a></h2>
+
+<p>Uncle Peter Stower, in dying and leaving his
+four grandnieces the Milton property, had left
+them, in addition (or so Ruth Kenway and her
+sisters concluded), the duty of overlooking the
+welfare of certain poor people who occupied the
+Stower tenements on Meadow Street, over toward
+the canal.</p>
+
+<p>These tenants were mostly poor people; but Mrs.
+Kranz, who kept a delicatessen store and grocery,
+and Joe Maroni, whom Dot said was “both an ice
+man and a nice man” were two of the tenants
+who were well-to-do.</p>
+
+<p>Joe Maroni, whose family lived in the corner
+cellar under Mrs. Kranz’s store, sold coal and
+wood, as well as ice, and had a vegetable and
+fruit stand on the sidewalk. Mrs. Kranz, the
+large German woman, was one of the Kenway
+girls’ staunchest friends. Both these shopkeepers
+were sure to aid the Corner House sisters in their
+plans for Christmas.</p>
+
+<p>The year before the children of the Stower estate
+tenants had appeared under the bedroom windows
+of the old Corner House early on Christmas
+morning and sung Christmas chants.</p>
+
+<p>“Agnes said, just as though it was in old fuel
+times,” Dot eagerly told Cecile Shepard. “And
+Aggie wanted to throw large yeast cakes among
+’em. You know, like Lady Bountiful did, and—”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! <i>Oh!</i> OH!” gasped Tess, in horror and
+amazement. “Why will you, Dot, mix up your
+words so? It wasn’t fuel times, it was feudal
+times.”</p>
+
+<p>“And why throw away the yeast cakes?” demanded
+Cecile, in amused wonder.</p>
+
+<p>“Dear me!” exclaimed Tess, with vast disdain.
+“She means <i>largess</i>. That means gifts. Dot
+thought it was ‘large yeast.’ I never did hear
+of such a child!”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I don’t care!” wailed Dot, who did not
+like to be taken to task for mispronouncing words,
+or for other mistakes in English. “I don’t think
+you are at all polite, Tessie Kenway, and I’m going
+to tell Ruth—so now!”</p>
+
+<p>Which proved that even the little Corner House
+girls had their little spats. Everything did not
+always go smoothly.</p>
+
+<p>However, the plans for the entertainment of the
+Meadow Street families were made without any
+trouble. It was decided to have a great tree for
+the whole crowd, and to set it up in a small hall
+on Meadow Street, where certain lodges held their
+meetings, the date set for the entertainment being
+a week in advance of Christmas Eve—the night before
+the Corner House party was to start for Red
+Deer Lodge.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Kranz took charge of the dressing of the
+tree, for when she was a child in the old country
+a Christmas tree was the great annual feast. Not
+a child among those belonging in the Stower tenements
+was forgotten—nor the grown folk, either,
+for that matter.</p>
+
+<p>Tess and Dot did their share in the purchasing
+of the presents and preparing them for the tree.
+They both delighted in shopping, and their favorite
+mart of trade was the five and ten cent
+store on Main Street.</p>
+
+<p>Such a jumble of things as they bought! The
+beauty of buying in the five and ten cent store is
+(or so the children declared) that one can get so
+much for a dollar.</p>
+
+<p>Every afternoon for a week before the day set
+for the pre-Christmas celebration, the little folks
+trudged down to their favorite emporium and
+came back with their arms laden with a variety
+of articles to delight the hearts and eyes of the
+Meadow Street children.</p>
+
+<p>Dolls and dolls’ toys were of course Dot’s favorite
+purchases. Tess went in for the more practical
+things—some to be hung on the tree marked
+with her own private card for the grown-up members
+of the expected audience.</p>
+
+<p>In any case, and altogether, there was gathered
+at the old Corner House to be hung on the Christmas
+tree for the Meadow Street people a two-bushel
+basket of little packages, mostly from the
+five and ten cent store.</p>
+
+<p>Ruth and Agnes saw to it that there were plenty
+of practical things for the poor children, too: warm
+coats, caps, leggings, shoes, mittens—a dozen
+other useful things which would be needed by the
+younger Goronofskys, the Pedermans, the O’Harras,
+and all the rest of the conglomerate crew occupying
+the Stower tenements.</p>
+
+<p>And they had <i>four</i> “Santa Clauses”! Although,
+more properly speaking, they were “the
+Misses Santa Claus.” The Kenway sisters, in the
+prescribed uniforms of the good St. Nicholas, presided
+over the distribution of the presents from
+the illuminated tree.</p>
+
+<p>Dot had every faith in the reality of Santa
+Claus, nor would her sisters disabuse her of that
+cheerful belief.</p>
+
+<p>“But, of course,” the smallest Corner House
+girl said, “I know Santa can’t be everywhere at
+once. And this is a week too early for him,
+anyway. And on Christmas Eve he does
+have to rush around so to get to everybody’s
+house!</p>
+
+<p>“We’re just going to make believe to be Santa,
+Sammy,” she explained to that small boy. “And
+we’re not going to be like you were last Christmas,
+Sammy, and fall down the chimney and
+frighten everybody so.”</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” grumbled Sammy, to whom his fiasco
+as a Santa Claus in the old Corner House chimney
+was a sore subject. “If that old brick hadn’t
+fallen I wouldn’t have come down so sudden.
+And my mom burned my Santa Claus suit up in
+the furnace because it was all over soot.”</p>
+
+<p>This night in the Meadow Street hall was long
+to be remembered. Mr. Howbridge made a
+speech. It was a winter when work was hard to
+get, and at Ruth’s personal request he announced
+that a dollar a month would be taken off every
+tenant’s rent during the “hard times.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Kranz and Joe Maroni, being in so much
+better circumstances than the majority of the
+Stower estate tenants, gave many things for the
+Christmas tree, too. There was candy, and cakes,
+and popcorn, and nuts for the little folk, and hot
+drinks and cake and sandwiches for the adults.</p>
+
+<p>Altogether it was a night long to be remembered
+by the Corner House girls. Even the little
+ones had begun to understand their duty toward
+these poor people who helped swell the Kenway
+family bank account. The estate might not now
+draw down the fifteen per cent. that Uncle Peter
+Stower always demanded; but the income from
+the Meadow Street tenements was considerable,
+and the tenants were now happier and more content.</p>
+
+<p>“It must be lovely,” Cecile Shepard confessed
+to Ruth and Agnes, “to have so many folks to
+look out for, and be kind to, and who like you.
+And Ruthie has such a way with her. I can see
+the women all admire her.”</p>
+
+<p>Agnes began to giggle. “Who wouldn’t admire
+her?” she said. “Ruth believes in helping folks
+just the way they want to be helped. She doesn’t
+furnish only flannels and cough sirup to the poor.
+Oh, no!”</p>
+
+<p>“Now, Agnes!” admonished the older girl,
+blushing.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t care! It’s too good a joke, and it
+shows just why those people over on Meadow
+Street worship Ruth,” went on the younger sister.
+“Did you see that biggest Pederman girl?
+Olga, the one with the white eyebrows and no
+lashes?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” said Cecile. “Her face looks almost
+like a blank wall.”</p>
+
+<p>“And a white-washed wall at that,” went on
+Agnes. “She’s a grown woman, but she hasn’t
+any too much intelligence. She was awfully sick
+with diphtheria last spring, and Ruth went to see
+her—carrying gifts, of course.”</p>
+
+<p>“Things to eat don’t much appeal to you when
+you have diphtheria and can’t swallow,” put in
+Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“I know that,” chuckled Agnes. “And what
+do you think, Cecile? Ruthie asked Olga what
+she would like to have—if she could get her anything
+special?</p>
+
+<p>“‘Yes, Miss Wuth,’ she croaked. Olga can’t
+pronounce her ‘R’s’ very well. ‘Yes, Miss Wuth,
+I’ve been wantin’ a pair of them dangly jet eawin’s
+for so long!’ And what do you suppose?” Agnes
+exploded in conclusion. “Ruth went and bought
+them for her! She had them on tonight.”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t care,” Ruth said, with conviction.
+“The earrings came nearer to curing Olga than
+all Dr. Forsyth’s medicine. He said so himself.”</p>
+
+<p>“What do you think of that?” giggled Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“I think it was awfully sweet of our Ruth,”
+declared Cecile, hugging the oldest Kenway sister.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. MacCall, for her part, was not at all sure
+that the Kenway sisters did not “encourage pauperism”
+in thus helping their tenants. Mrs. MacCall
+was conservative in the extreme.</p>
+
+<p>“No,” Ruth said earnestly, “the dear little babies,
+and the little folks with empty ‘tummies,’
+are not paupers, Mrs. MacCall. Nor are their
+parents such. We haven’t a lazy tenant family in
+the Stower houses.”</p>
+
+<p>“That may be as may be,” said the housekeeper,
+shaking her head. “But they are too frequently
+out o’ work to suit me. And guidness knows
+there’s plenty to do in the world.”</p>
+
+<p>“They’re just unfortunate,” reiterated Ruth.
+“We have been lucky. We never did a thing, we
+Kenways, to get Uncle Peter’s wealth. We’ve
+had better luck than the Pedermans and Goronofskys.”</p>
+
+<p>“Hush, my lassie! If you undertake to level
+things in this world for all, you’ve a big job cut
+out for you. Nae doot of that.”</p>
+
+<p>Although the housekeeper was often opposed
+both in opinion and practice to Ruth and her sisters,
+the latter were eager to have Mrs. MacCall
+go with the vacation party as chaperone and
+manager. And, indeed, had Mrs. MacCall not agreed,
+it is doubtful if Ruth would have accepted Mr.
+Howbridge’s invitation to go into the North
+Woods to Red Deer Lodge.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. MacCall sacrificed her own desires and
+some comfort to accompany the young folks; but
+she did it cheerfully because of her love for the
+Corner House girls.</p>
+
+<p>Aunt Sarah Maltby would remain at home to
+oversee things at the Corner House; and of course
+Linda and Uncle Rufus would be with her.</p>
+
+<p>Trunks had been packed the day before the
+early celebration of Christmas in the Meadow
+Street lodge room, and had been sent on by train
+with the serving people that Hedden, Mr. Howbridge’s
+butler and factotum, had engaged to go
+ahead of the vacation party and prepare Red Deer
+Lodge for occupancy over the holidays.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, Neale O’Neil and the older girls had
+their bags to carry with them, and Sammy Pinkney
+came over to the old Corner House bright and
+early on the morning of departure, lugging his
+bulging suitcase.</p>
+
+<p>“And I hope,” Agnes said with severity, “that
+you haven’t worms in that suitcase, with a lot of
+other worthless truck, as you had when you went
+on our automobile tour, Sammy.”</p>
+
+<p>“Huh! where’d I dig fishworms this time of
+year?” responded the boy with scorn. “Besides,
+mom packed this bag, and she’s left out a whole
+lot of things I’ll need up there in the woods. She
+won’t even let me take my bow-arrer and a steel
+trap I got down at the blacksmith shop by the
+canal. Of course, the latch of the trap was broke,
+but we might have fixed it and used it to catch
+wolves with.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, my!” squealed Dot. “<i>Wolves?</i> Why,
+they are savage!”</p>
+
+<p>“Course they are savage,” said Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“But—but Mr. Howbridge, our guardian,
+wouldn’t let any wolves stay around that Darling
+Lodge. They might eat my Alice-doll!”</p>
+
+<p>“Sure,” agreed the boy, as Agnes was not
+within hearing. “Like enough the wolf pack will
+chase us when we are sleighing, and you’ll have
+to throw that doll over to pacificate ’em so we
+can escape with our lives. They do that in
+Russia. Throw the babies away to save folks’
+lives.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well!” exclaimed Tess, half doubting this
+bold statement. “Babies must be awful cheap in
+Russia. Cheaper than they are here. You know
+we can’t get a baby in this house, and we all would
+like to have one.”</p>
+
+<p>But Dot had been stricken dumb by Sammy’s
+wild statement. She hugged the Alice-doll to her
+breast, and her eyes were wide with fear.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you suppose that may happen, Tess?” she
+whispered.</p>
+
+<p>“What may happen?”</p>
+
+<p>“That we get chased by wolfs and—and have
+to throw somebody overboard to ’em?”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t believe so,” said Tess, after all somewhat
+impressed by Sammy’s assurance.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, anyway,” said Dot, “I was only going
+to take Alice up there to that Lodge; but I’ll take
+the sailor-doll, too. He can stand being thrown
+to the wolves better than Alice. He’s tougher.”</p>
+
+<p>If it had not already been decided to take Tom
+Jonah, the big Newfoundland, along on this winter
+trip, Dot might really have balked at going.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink06'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER VI—ON THE WINGS OF THE WIND</a></h2>
+
+<p>However, aside from Dot’s disturbance of mind
+over the trip into the deep woods where, on occasion,
+babies had to be flung to wolves, there was
+something that disturbed Ruth on this morning
+which almost made her doubt the advisability of
+starting for Red Deer Lodge.</p>
+
+<p>Ruth had been up as early as Linda, the Finnish
+maid. There was still much to do, and the sleigh
+would be at the door at eight-thirty. When
+Linda came down, however, she stopped at Ruth’s
+door and said she had heard Uncle Rufus groaning
+most of the night. The old colored man was
+undoubtedly suffering from one of his recurrent
+rheumatic attacks.</p>
+
+<p>Ruth hurried up to the third story of the house
+and to Uncle Rufus’ room.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes’m, Missie Ruth,” groaned the old man.
+“Ah’s jes’ knocked right down ag’in. Ah don’
+believe Ah’s goin’ to be able to git up a-tall to
+see yo’ off dis mawnin’.”</p>
+
+<p>“Poor Uncle Rufus!” said the oldest Corner
+House girl, commiseratingly. “I believe I’d better
+telephone to Dr. Forsyth and let him come—”</p>
+
+<p>“No’m. Ah don’ want dat Dr. Forsyth to come
+a-near me, Missie Ruth,” interrupted Uncle Rufus.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, of course you do,” said the girl. “He
+gave you something before that helped you.
+Don’t you remember?”</p>
+
+<p>“Ah don’ say he don’ know he’s business, Missie
+Ruth,” said the old man, shaking his head.
+“Mebbe his med’cine’s jest as good as de nex’
+doctor’s med’cine. But Ah don’ want Dr. Forsyth
+no mo’.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why not?”</p>
+
+<p>“Dr. Forsyth done insulted me,” said the old
+man, with rising indignation. “He done talk
+about me.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, Uncle Rufus!”</p>
+
+<p>“Sho’ has!” repeated the black man. “An’
+Ah nebber did him a mite o’ harm. He done say
+things about me dat I can’t nebber overlook—no,
+ma’am!”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, Uncle Rufus!” murmured the worried
+Ruth, “I think you must be mistaken. I can’t
+imagine Dr. Forsyth being unkind, or saying unkind
+things about one.”</p>
+
+<p>“He sho’ did,” declared the obstinate old man.
+“And he done put it in writin’. You jes’ reach
+me ma best coat, Missie Ruth. It’s all set down
+dar on ma burial papers.”</p>
+
+<p>Of course, Uncle Rufus, like most frugal colored
+people, belonged to a “burial association”—an
+insurance scheme by which one must die to win.</p>
+
+<p>“What could Dr. Forsyth have said about you
+that you think is unkind, Uncle Rufus?” repeated
+Ruth, as she came into the room to get the coat.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah tell yo’ what he done said!” exclaimed the
+old man, indignantly. “Dr. Forsyth say Ah was
+a drunkard an’ a joy-rider! Dat’s what he say!
+An’ de goodness know, Missie Ruth, I ain’t tetch
+a drap of gin fo’ many a long year, and I ain’t
+nebber step foot in even your automobile. No’m!
+He done insulted me befo’ de members of ma
+burial lodge, an’ I don’ want nothin’ mo’ to do
+wid dat white man—no’m!”</p>
+
+<p>He spread out the insurance policy with a flourish
+and pointed to the examining doctor’s notation
+regarding Uncle Rufus’ former illness: “Autotoxication.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ah’s a respectable man,” urged Uncle Rufus,
+evidently hurt to the quick by what he thought was
+Dr. Forsyth’s uncalled-for criticism. “Ah don’t
+get drunk in no auto—no’m! An’ I don’t go
+scootin’ roun’ de country in one o’ dem ’bominations.
+Dere is niggers w’at owns one o’ dem flivvers
+an’ drinks gin wid it. But not Unc’ Rufus—no’m!”</p>
+
+<p>“I never would accuse you of such reprehensible
+habits,” Ruth assured him, having considerable
+difficulty in suppressing after all a desire to
+laugh. “Nor does Dr. Forsyth mean anything
+like that.”</p>
+
+<p>She explained carefully to the old negro that
+“autotoxication” meant “self-poisoning”—the
+poisoning of the body by unexpelled organic
+matter. This poison, in the form of an acid in the
+blood, was the cause of Uncle Rufus’ pains and
+aches.</p>
+
+<p>“Fo’ de lan’s sake!” murmured Uncle Rufus.
+“Is dat sho’ ’nough so, Missie Ruth?”</p>
+
+<p>“You know I would not mislead you, Uncle Rufus.”</p>
+
+<p>“Dat’s right. You would not,” agreed the old
+man. “An’ is dat what dat fool white doctor
+mean? Ah jes’ got rheumatics, like Ah always
+has?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, Uncle Rufus.”</p>
+
+<p>“Tell me, Missie Ruth,” he asked, “what do
+dem doctors want to use sech wo’ds fo’, when dere
+is common wo’ds to use dat a pusson kin understan’?”</p>
+
+<p>“Just for that reason, I fancy,” laughed Ruth.
+“So the patient cannot understand. The doctors
+think it isn’t well for the patient to know too much
+about what ails him, so they call ordinary illnesses
+by hard names.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ain’t it a fac’? Ain’t it a fac’?” repeated
+Uncle Rufus, shaking his head. “Ah reckon if we
+knowed too much, we wouldn’t want doctors a-tall,
+eh? Well, now, Missie Ruth, you let dat Lindy
+gal git ma’ medicine bottle filled down to de drug
+store, and Ah’ll dose up like Ah done befo’. If
+dat white doctor’s medicine was good fo’ one time,
+it ought to be good fo’ another time.”</p>
+
+<p>Uncle Rufus remained in bed, however, and the
+little girls and Sammy, as well as Neale and Agnes,
+trooped up to say good-bye to him before they
+started for the railway station.</p>
+
+<p>The north-bound express train halted at Milton
+at three minutes past nine, and the Corner House
+party were in good season for it. Mr. Howbridge
+joined them on the station platform. Hedden, the
+lawyer’s man, having gone ahead to make the path
+smooth for his employer and his friends, Mr. Howbridge
+and Neale attended to getting the tickets
+and to the light baggage; and they made the three
+older girls, Mrs. MacCall, and the children comfortable
+in the chair car. Tom Jonah, of course,
+rode in the baggage car.</p>
+
+<p>It was two hundred miles and more to Culberton,
+at the foot of Long Lake. The train made
+very good time, but it was past one o’clock when
+they alighted at the lake city. There was a narrow
+gauge road here that followed the line of the
+lake in a northerly direction; but it was little more
+than a logging road and the trains were so slow,
+and the schedule so poor, that Mr. Howbridge had
+planned for other and more novel means of transportation
+up the lake to the small town from which
+they would have to strike back into the wilderness
+by “tote-road” to Red Deer Lodge. But this new
+means of transportation, he told the young people,
+depended entirely upon the wind.</p>
+
+<p>“Goodness!” gasped Agnes, “are we going up
+the lake by kite?”</p>
+
+<p>“In a balloon, maybe?” Cecile laughed.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” murmured Tess, who was much
+interested in air traffic, “I hope it’s a big aeroplane.”</p>
+
+<p>“Nothing like that,” Neale assured her. “But
+if we have a good wind you’ll think we’re flying,
+Tess.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge had taken the ex-circus boy into
+his confidence; but the rest of the party were so
+busy greeting Luke Shepard, who was waiting for
+them at this point, that they did not consider much
+how they were to get up the lake. There was no
+train leaving Culberton over the Lake Branch
+until evening. Neale disappeared immediately
+after greeting Luke, and took Tom Jonah with
+him.</p>
+
+<p>In a few minutes Neale returned to the waiting
+room of the Culberton railroad station, and said
+to Mr. Howbridge:</p>
+
+<p>“They are about ready. Man says the wind is
+good, and likely to be fresher, if anything. Favorable
+time. He’s making ’em ready.”</p>
+
+<p>“What’s going on?” asked Luke, who was a
+handsome young collegian particularly interested
+in Ruth Kenway, and not too serious to be enthusiastic
+over the secret the lawyer and Neale had
+between them.</p>
+
+<p>“Come on and we’ll show you,” Neale said,
+grinning.</p>
+
+<p>“No, no!” exclaimed Mr. Howbridge. “Let us
+have lunch first. We have a long, cold ride before
+us.”</p>
+
+<p>“In what?” Agnes asked. “We don’t take to
+the sleigh yet, do we?”</p>
+
+<p>“Aren’t the cars on the branch line heated?”
+Ruth asked. “You know, we must not let the
+children get cold—and Mrs. MacCall.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t mind about me, lassie,” returned the
+Scotchwoman. “I’ll trust myself to Mr. Howbridge.”</p>
+
+<p>“We’ll go to the hotel first of all,” said the
+lawyer. “Hedden will have arranged for our
+comfort there—and other things, as well. Do not
+be afraid for the children, Martha.”</p>
+
+<p>But “Martha” could not help being a bit worried,
+even if Mrs. MacCall was along. And
+Neale’s grin was too impish to be comforting.</p>
+
+<p>“I know you men folks are cooking up something,”
+she sighed. “And I am not at all sure,
+Mr. Howbridge, that you consider the needs of
+small children like Tess and Dot and Sammy.”</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” grunted Sammy, who overheard this.</p>
+
+<p>“I suppose if I had taken my twins home three
+months ago when Frank Birdsall died, you think
+I would have learned something about the needs
+and care of young persons by this time?” suggested
+the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I am sure you would have learned a great
+deal,” agreed Ruth, unable to suppress a smile.</p>
+
+<p>“I wish I had!” groaned Mr. Howbridge.</p>
+
+<p>The mystery of the disappearance of Ralph and
+Rowena Birdsall weighed on Mr. Howbridge’s
+mind continually. He did not often let the trouble
+come to the surface, however, being desirous of
+giving the young people with him a good time.</p>
+
+<p>The surprise in store for them added zest to the
+enjoyment of the nice luncheon at the Culberton
+hotel. At half past two they all trooped out of
+the hotel, bags in hand, and instead of returning
+to the railway station, set off down the hill toward
+the docks.</p>
+
+<p>“Are we going by steamer?” Agnes wanted to
+know. “Is there a channel open through the ice?
+I never <i>did</i>!”</p>
+
+<p>“If there were two feet of ice on the Arlington
+Pond so that they could not drag it for the poor
+Birdsall twins,” Ruth said, “surely this lake must
+be frozen quite as thick.”</p>
+
+<p>“But there’s a sailboat! I see one!” cried Tess,
+pointing between the buildings as they approached
+the waterfront.</p>
+
+<p>“And there’s another,” said Sammy. “Oh, Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!
+Looky, Aggie! That boat’s sailing
+on the ice!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh-ee!” squealed Agnes, clasping her hands
+and letting her bag fall to the ground. “Ice-boats!
+Neale! Are they really ice-boats?”</p>
+
+<p>“And are we going to sail on them?” murmured
+Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“For mercy’s sake!” gasped the housekeeper.
+“Here’s a fine thing! Have you gone daft, Mr.
+Howbridge?”</p>
+
+<p>“It will be a new experience for you and me,
+Mrs. MacCall,” said the lawyer calmly. “But
+they tell me it is very invigorating.”</p>
+
+<p>“It’s the nearest thing to flying, as far as the
+sensation goes, that there is, I guess,” Luke Shepard
+put in.</p>
+
+<p>“I used to have a scooter when we were in
+winter quarters,” said Neale O’Neil to Agnes.
+“Don’t be afraid, Aggie.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I won’t be afraid if you are along, Neale,”
+promptly declared the little beauty. “I know you
+will take care of me.”</p>
+
+<p>“You bet!” responded Neale, his eyes shining.</p>
+
+<p>As they came down to the big wharf the party
+got a better view of the lake front. There were at
+least a dozen ice-boats, large and small, in motion.
+Those farthest out from the shore had caught the
+full sweep of the wind and were darting about, as
+Mrs. MacCall said, like water-bugs on the surface
+of a pond.</p>
+
+<p>Ruth looked around keenly as they came out on
+the wharf.</p>
+
+<p>“Why!” she said to Mr. Howbridge, “this is the
+lumber company’s wharf. The company you said
+had bought the timber on the Birdsall Estate.”</p>
+
+<p>“It is the Neven Lumber Company, as you can
+see by the sign over the offices yonder,” agreed
+their guardian. “And here comes Neven himself.”</p>
+
+<p>A red-faced man with a red vest on which were
+small yellow dots and some grease spots, and who
+chewed a big and black cigar and wore his hard
+hat on one side of his head, approached the group
+as Mr. Howbridge spoke. He hailed the latter
+jovially.</p>
+
+<p>“Hey, Howbridge! Glad to see you. So these
+are your folks, are they? Hope you’ll have a
+merry Christmas up there in the woods. Nice
+place, Birdsall’s Lodge.”</p>
+
+<p>“Thank you,” said the lawyer quietly.</p>
+
+<p>“Which of ’em’s Birdsall’s young ones?” continued
+the lumber dealer, staring about with very
+bold eyes, and especially at Ruth Kenway and
+Cecile Shepard.</p>
+
+<p>“I am sorry to say, Mr. Neven,” said the lawyer,
+“that the Birdsall twins are not with us.
+The children have run away from their home—a
+home with people who have known them since they
+were born. It is a very strange affair, and is causing
+me much worry.”</p>
+
+<p>“You don’t say!” exclaimed Neven. “Too
+bad! Too bad! But they’ll turn up. Young
+’uns always do. I ran away myself when I was a
+kid; and look at me now,” and the lumberman
+puffed out his chest proudly, as though satisfied
+that Lem Neven was a good deal of a man.</p>
+
+<p>“I reckon,” pursued the lumberman, “that you
+think it’s your duty to go up to the Birdsall place
+and look over the piece I’ve got stumpage on. But
+you don’t re’lly need to. My men are scientific, I
+tell you. I don’t hire no old has-beens like Ike
+M’Graw. Those old timber cruisers are a hundred
+years behind the times.”</p>
+
+<p>“They have one very good attribute. At least,
+Ike has,” Mr. Howbridge said quietly.</p>
+
+<p>“What’s that?” asked Neven.</p>
+
+<p>“He is perfectly honest,” was the dry response.
+“I shall base my demands for the Birdsall estate
+on Ike’s report. I assure you of that now, Mr.
+Neven, so that you need build no false hopes upon
+the reports of your own cruisers. As the contract
+stands we can close it out and deal with another
+company if it seems best to do so. And some company—either
+yours or another—will go in there
+right after New Year’s and begin to cut.”</p>
+
+<p>He turned promptly away from the red-faced
+man and followed his party along the wharf to its
+end. Here lay two large ice-boats. There was a
+boxlike cockpit on each that would hold four passengers
+comfortably, besides the tiller men and the
+boy who “trimmed ship.” A crew of two went
+with each boat.</p>
+
+<p>“How will the other two of our party travel?”
+asked Ruth, when these arrangements were explained.</p>
+
+<p>Already Neale O’Neil had beckoned Agnes to
+one side. There lay behind the two big boats a
+skeleton-like arrangement, with a seat at the stern
+no wider than a bobsled, and another on the “outrigger,”
+or crossbeam. This scooter carried a
+huge boom for a leg-o’-mutton sail, and it was a
+type of the very fastest ice-boats on the lake.</p>
+
+<p>Neale helped the eager Agnes down a rude ladder
+to the ice. She was just reckless enough to
+desire to try the new means of locomotion. Her
+exclamations of delight drew Ruth to the edge of
+the wharf over their heads.</p>
+
+<p>“What are you two doing down there?” asked
+the older girl.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, now, Ruthie!” murmured Agnes, “do let
+me go with Neale in this pretty boat. There isn’t
+room for us in the bigger boats. Do!”</p>
+
+<p>Ruth knew very little about racing ice-boats.
+The scooter looked no more dangerous to her than
+did the lumbering craft that Hedden had engaged
+for the rest of the party.</p>
+
+<p>These bigger boats, furnished with square sails
+rather than the leg-o’-muttons they now flaunted,
+were commonly used to transfer merchandise, or
+even logs up and down the lake. They were lumbering
+and slow.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, if Mr. Howbridge says you can,” the
+oldest Corner House girl agreed, still somewhat
+doubtful.</p>
+
+<p>Neale had already begged permission of Mr.
+Howbridge. The lawyer was quite as ignorant regarding
+ice-boating as Ruth herself. Neither of
+them considered that any real harm could come to
+Neale and Agnes in the smaller craft.</p>
+
+<p>The crews of the larger ice-boats were experienced
+boatmen. They got their lumbering craft
+under way just as soon as the passengers were
+settled with their light baggage in the cockpits.
+There were bear robes and blankets in profusion.
+Although the wind was keen, the party did not
+expect that Jack Frost would trouble them.</p>
+
+<p>“Isn’t this great?” cried Cecile, who was in one
+of the boats with Ruth, her brother, and Sammy
+Pinkney. “My! we always manage to have such
+very nice times when we are with you Corner
+House girls, Ruthie.”</p>
+
+<p>“This is all new to me,” admitted her friend.
+“I hope nothing will happen to wreck us.”</p>
+
+<p>“Wreck us! Fancy!” laughed Cecile.</p>
+
+<p>“This wind is very strong, just the same,” said
+Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“Hold hard!” cried Luke, laughing. “Low
+bridge!”</p>
+
+<p>The boom swung over, and they all stooped
+quickly to avoid it. The next moment the big
+sail filled, bulging with the force of the wind.
+The heavy runners began to whine over the powdered
+ice, and they went swiftly onward toward
+the middle of the lake.</p>
+
+<p>“On the wings of the wind! How delightful!”
+cried Cecile. Then she said again: “Isn’t this
+great?”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink07'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER VII—THE SCOOTER</a></h2>
+
+<p>Sammy Pinkney had desired greatly to go with
+Neale and Agnes on the smaller ice-boat; but they
+would not hear to the proposal. He struck up an
+acquaintance with the “crew” of the big boat to
+which he was assigned, and gave Ruth and Luke
+Shepard no trouble.</p>
+
+<p>In the other large boat Mr. Howbridge, Mrs.
+MacCall and the two smallest Corner House girls,
+as well as Tom Jonah, were very cozily ensconced.
+Dot clutched the Alice-doll very tightly and Tom
+Jonah barked loudly when the barge slithered out
+upon the lake and began to gather speed as the
+fresh wind filled the big sail.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. MacCall continued to have her doubts regarding
+the safety of this strange means of locomotion.</p>
+
+<p>“There’s one good thing about it,” she chattered,
+as the sledge jarred over a few hummocks.
+“There’s nae so far to fall if we do fall out.”</p>
+
+<p>“It’s perfectly safe, they tell me,” Mr. Howbridge
+assured her.</p>
+
+<p>“Aye. It may look so,” the good woman admitted.
+“But ’tis like Tam Taggart goin’ to
+London.”</p>
+
+<p>“How was that?” the lawyer asked, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>“Tam was one o’ these canny Highlanders, and
+he made up his mind after muckle thought to spend
+a week in London. He went to ‘broaden his mind,’
+as they call it. Truly, to prove to himself that
+London and the English were quite as bad as he’d
+believed all his life.</p>
+
+<p>“So he goes to London, and he comes home
+again—very solemn like. Nobody could get a
+word out of him at first,” pursued Mrs. MacCall.
+“Finally the folks, they gathered around him at
+the post-office and one says:</p>
+
+<p>“‘What ails ye, Tam? Ye’ve no told us anything
+aboot Lunnon. Is it nae the fine place
+they’d have us believe?’</p>
+
+<p>“‘Oo, aye, ’tis nae so bad,’ says Tam. ‘But
+they are nae honest up there.’</p>
+
+<p>“‘Whit way air they no honest, Tam?’ asks his
+friends.</p>
+
+<p>“‘Weel,’ says Tam, ‘I aye had my doots all the
+time; but I made sure the day I bought me a
+penny-packet of needles. On the outside o’ it, it
+said there was one thousand needles inside.’</p>
+
+<p>“‘Oh, aye?’</p>
+
+<p>“‘I coonted ’em,’ says Tam, ‘an’—wad ye believe
+it?—there was only nine hundred and ninety-three!’
+And this boat-sliding may look all right,”
+concluded the Corner House housekeeper, “but,
+like Tam, ‘I have me doots!’”</p>
+
+<p>As the boat gathered speed, following the one
+on which Ruth and her companions sailed out into
+the open lake, the little girls squealed their delight.
+Even Dot forgot her fears. And Tom
+Jonah “smiled” just as broadly as he could.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Tessie!” Dot gasped. “It <i>is</i> like flying!
+My breath’s too big for my mouth—just like I was
+in a swing.”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess you must feel like poor Sandyface did
+when Sammy sent her with her kittens from our
+house to his in the fly-a-majig. You remember?”
+said Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“I should say I did!” agreed Dot in her old-fashioned
+way. “What an awful time that was,
+wasn’t it? And Sammy got spanked.”</p>
+
+<p>“Sammy’s always getting spanked,” Tess said
+coolly.</p>
+
+<p>“Ye-as. He is. But I guess he’s never got
+used to it yet,” responded the smallest Corner
+House girl thoughtfully.</p>
+
+<p>The wind, when they faced forward, almost took
+their breath. The little girls cowered down under
+the warm robes, looking astern. So their bright
+eyes were the first to catch sight of the scooter
+shooting out into the lake behind them.</p>
+
+<p>The wharves and dun-colored houses of Culberton
+were already far astern. And how fast the
+town was receding!</p>
+
+<p>The smaller ice-boat, however, overtook the big
+boats almost as though the latter were standing
+still! The others caught sight of the careening
+ice-racer soon after Dot and Tess first shouted.
+But neither of the little girls nor the other
+members of the party realized that Neale and Agnes
+were aboard the craft that came, meteor-like, up
+the lake.</p>
+
+<p>They had started sedately enough, Neale O’Neil
+at the stern with the tiller ropes in his mittened
+hands and Agnes strapped into the seat on the outrigger,
+with the bight of the running sheet in her
+charge.</p>
+
+<p>Neale had told her plainly what to do ordinarily,
+and had instructed her to look to him for orders
+in any emergency. It looked to be very simple,
+this working out an ice-scooter that had in it the
+possibility of sailing at any speed up to a hundred
+miles an hour!</p>
+
+<p>Somebody had started the creaking boat with
+the purchase of a pike pole at the rear. The
+peavy bit into the ice, and the scooter rocked out
+from the wharf. The big sail was already spread.
+They had wabbled out of the confinement of the
+dock slowly and sedately enough.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly the wind puffed into the sail and bellied
+it. The stick bent and groaned. It seemed
+as though the runners stuck to the surface of the
+ice and the mast would be torn from the framework
+of the craft.</p>
+
+<p>Then she really started!</p>
+
+<p>The powerful on-thrust of the wind in the sail
+shot the scooter away from the shore. She
+swooped like a gull across the ice. The whining
+of steel on ice rose to a painful shriek in Agnes’
+ears.</p>
+
+<p>She was scared. Oh, yes, she was scared! But
+she would not admit it—not for worlds! Faster
+and faster the scooter moved. The girl looked
+back once at Neale and caught a glimpse of his
+confident smile. It heartened her wonderfully.</p>
+
+<p>“Hold hard, Aggie!” his strong voice shouted,
+and she nodded, blinking the water out of her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>They had headed up Long Lake as they left the
+shore, and they could travel on the wind, and without
+tacking, for a long way. They overhauled the
+two big barges in which the rest of the party
+sailed, in a way that fairly made Agnes gasp.
+She had never traveled so fast before in all her
+life.</p>
+
+<p>The scooter struck a hummock in the ice. It
+was not six inches above the general level of the
+crystal surface of the lake. But the impetus it
+gave the ice-boat sent that seemingly fragile craft
+up into the air! She left the ice for a long, breathtaking,
+humming jump. It seemed to Agnes as
+though they were going right up into the air, very
+much as an aeroplane soars from the earth.</p>
+
+<p>Indeed, had the ice-boat a movable tail like an
+aeroplane, surely it would completely take to the
+air. Next to piloting an aeroplane, ice-boat racing
+is the greatest sport in the world.</p>
+
+<p>Spang! The scooter took to the ice again and
+ran like a scared rabbit. The stays sang a new
+tune. Had the sheet not had a simple cast about a
+peg beside her, Agnes would surely have lost the
+bight of it.</p>
+
+<p>But Neale had told her certain things to do, and
+she would not fail him. Through half-blinded
+eyes she cast another glance at him over her shoulder.
+The boy showed no evidence of panic, and
+Agnes was ashamed to display her own inner feelings.</p>
+
+<p>When Neale said, “You’re a regular little sport,
+Aggie!” it was the finest tribute to character that
+Agnes Kenway knew anything about. She was
+determined to win his approval now, if never before.</p>
+
+<p>Ruth saw them coming, but had no idea at first
+that the careening ice-racer was the small boat
+that Neale and her sister had engaged for the run
+up the lake. The schooner came on like, and with,
+the wind!</p>
+
+<p>“See that boat, Cecile!” cried the oldest Corner
+House girl. “How reckless it is to ride so fast.
+Suppose the mast should snap or a skate should
+break? My!”</p>
+
+<p>“But look how they fly!” agreed her friend.</p>
+
+<p>“Hey!” exclaimed Luke. “That’s Neale
+O’Neil steering that thing.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Mercy! <i>Agnes!</i>” shrieked Ruth, her
+eyes suddenly opened to the identity of the two
+on the scooter.</p>
+
+<p>“Hoorah!” yelled Luke. “What speed!”</p>
+
+<p>The party on the other big boat had recognized
+the two on the scooter. The fur-trimmed coat and
+brilliant-hued hood Agnes wore could not be mistaken.</p>
+
+<p>“Stop them! Stop them!” moaned Ruth, really
+alarmed.</p>
+
+<p>It seemed to her that the boat she was riding in
+was going much too fast for safety; but the scooter
+flew up the lake at a pace that made the big boats
+seem to stand still.</p>
+
+<p>Neale plainly knew how to handle the racer. He
+passed the two barges and then tacked, aiming to
+cross the bows of the bigger craft.</p>
+
+<p>Instantly, as the boom swung around, Agnes’
+end of the crossbeam went into the air! They saw
+her sail upward, the flashing steel runners at least
+four feet above the ice!</p>
+
+<p>The girl’s wind-whipped face was still smiling.
+Indeed, that smile seemed frozen on. As the
+racer rushed by Agnes looked down upon her sisters
+and other friends and waved one hand to
+them.</p>
+
+<p>Then, like a huge kite, the big-bellied sail raced
+off across the lake, taking the reckless pair almost
+instantly out of earshot.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink08'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER VIII—THE VILLAGE ON THE ICE</a></h2>
+
+<p>The wild plunge of the scooter across the lake
+carried it, before a wind-squall, far out of hearing
+of Ruth Kenway’s voice. Yet she shouted long
+and loud after her sister. Luke pulled her back
+into her seat when she would have stood up to
+watch the careening scooter.</p>
+
+<p>“They are in no danger,” he urged. “Take it
+easy, Ruth.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, they must be in peril! Did you see
+her—Agnes—up in the air?”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, she’s down again all right now, Ruthie,”
+said Cecile Shepard soothingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, if I had only known!”</p>
+
+<p>“Known what?” asked Luke, inclined to grin if
+the truth was told.</p>
+
+<p>“That the small boat would sail like that. Why,
+it is worse than a racing automobile!”</p>
+
+<p>“Faster, I guess. Almost as fast as a motorcycle,”
+Luke agreed. “But Neale’s managed one
+of those things before. He told me all about it.”</p>
+
+<p>“But why didn’t somebody tell me about it?”
+demanded Ruth rather stormily.</p>
+
+<p>“Tell you about what?” asked Cecile.</p>
+
+<p>“About how fast that reckless thing would sail?
+Why! I’d never have allowed Aggie to ride on it
+in this world.”</p>
+
+<p>In the other big ice-boat there was much anxiety
+as well. Mr. Howbridge and Mrs. MacCall would
+have stopped the reckless ones could they have
+done so, and Tom Jonah was barking his head off.
+He, too, had recognized Agnes and Neale and believed
+that all was not right with them.</p>
+
+<p>The scooter, however, was clear across the lake
+again; they saw it tack once more, and this time,
+because of the favoring breeze, Neale headed her
+directly up the lake. Every minute he and Agnes
+on their racer were leaving the rest of the party
+behind.</p>
+
+<p>These scooters cannot be sailed at a slow pace.
+The skeleton craft is so light, and the sail so big,
+that the least puff of breeze drives it ahead at railroad
+speed.</p>
+
+<p>Now with a pretty steady breeze behind them,
+the scooter was bound to “show off.” Nor did the
+young people realize just how fast they sailed, or
+how perilous their course looked to their friends.</p>
+
+<p>“We’re running away from them!” Agnes managed
+to throw back over her shoulder at Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“Can’t help it!” he cried in return. “This old
+scooter has taken the bit in its teeth.”</p>
+
+<p>Agnes had begun to enjoy the speed to the full
+now. Why! this was better than motoring over
+the finest kind of oiled road. And the young girl
+did like to travel fast.</p>
+
+<p>She began to see that the farther they went up
+Long Lake the wilder the shores appeared to be
+and the fewer houses there were visible. Here
+and there was a little village, with a white-steepled
+church pointing heavenward among the almost
+black spruce and pine. Again, a cleared farm
+showed forth, its fields sheeted with snow.</p>
+
+<p>The lake was quite ten miles broad in most
+places, and occasionally it spread to a width of
+more than twice that number of miles. Then they
+could barely see the hazy shoreline at all.</p>
+
+<p>“We could not be lonesomer,” thought Agnes,
+“if we were sailing on the ocean!”</p>
+
+<p>The sails behind them had all disappeared.
+Once a squad of timber barges with square sails
+was passed. The barges were going up empty to
+the head of the lake there to be loaded and await
+a favoring breeze to bring them back to Culberton
+again. It was much cheaper for the lumber concerns
+to sail the logs down the lake if they could,
+than to load them on the narrow gauge railroad
+and pay freight to Culberton. The sticks had to
+be handled at the foot of the lake, anyway.</p>
+
+<p>The scooter went past these slowly sailing
+barges almost as rapidly as they had passed the
+two boats in which sailed the remainder of the
+Corner House party. The stays creaked and the
+steel whined on the ice, while the wind boomed in
+the big sail like a muffled drum.</p>
+
+<p>The sun, hazy and red like the face of a haymaker
+in harvest time, was going westward and
+would soon disappear behind the mountain ridge
+which followed the shoreline of the lake, but at a
+distance. It was up in the foothills of those mountains
+that Red Deer Lodge was located.</p>
+
+<p>After passing the empty barges the boy and girl
+on the scooter saw no other sail nor anything
+which excited their attention until Agnes suddenly
+beheld a group of objects on the ice near the
+western shore of the lake, not many miles ahead.</p>
+
+<p>She began almost immediately to wonder what
+these things could be, but she could not make
+Neale O’Neil understand the question she shouted
+to him. By and by, however, she saw for herself
+that the objects were a number of little huts, and
+that they really were built upon the frozen surface
+of the lake.</p>
+
+<p>Agnes was naturally very much interested in
+this strange sight. A village on the ice was something
+quite novel to her mind. She desired very
+much to ask questions of Neale, but the wind was
+too great and they were sailing too fast for her to
+make her desire known to her boy friend.</p>
+
+<p>So she just used her eyes (when they did not
+water too much) and stared at the strange collection
+of huts and its vicinity with all her might.
+Why! from lengths of stove pipe through some of
+the slanting roofs, smoke was climbing into the
+hazy atmosphere.</p>
+
+<p>Back of the ice-village, on the steep western
+shore of the lake, was built a regular town of slab
+shanties, with a slab church, stores, and the like.
+Quite a village, this, and when Agnes looked back
+at Neale questioningly and pointed to them, he
+shouted: “Coxford.” So she knew it was their
+destination.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge had said they would disembark
+from the ice-boats at Coxford, and there would
+take sledges into the woods. It was fast growing
+toward evening, however, and Agnes knew it would
+be too late when they landed to continue the journey
+to Red Deer Lodge before the next morning.</p>
+
+<p>The ice-village was about two miles out from the
+shore. There were half a hundred huts, some a
+dozen feet square. But for the most part they
+were much smaller. They had doors, but no windows,
+and, as the scooter drew swiftly nearer,
+Agnes could see that the structures were little
+more than wind-breaks.</p>
+
+<p>There were a number of people moving about
+the settlement of huts, however, and not a few
+children among them, as well as dogs. As the
+scooter drew near she saw, too, a team of horses
+drawing a sledge. This sledge was being loaded
+with boxes, or crates; and what those boxes could
+contain began to puzzle Agnes as much as anything
+else she saw about the queer village.</p>
+
+<p>Neale steered outside the line of the ice settlement;
+but once beyond it he brought the scooter up
+into the wind and yelled at Agnes to let go the
+sheet and falls. She loosened the lines from the
+pegs and allowed them to slip. Down came the
+shaking canvas, the wooden hoops clattering together
+as they slid down the greased mast. In a
+moment the speed of the scooter was lost and they
+were all but smothered in the fallen canvas.</p>
+
+<p>“Get out from under!” Neale’s voice shouted.</p>
+
+<p>He dropped off at the stern and ran to the girl’s
+aid. He unbuckled the belt that had secured
+Agnes to her seat on the outrigger all this while,
+and fairly dragged her from under the flapping
+sail.</p>
+
+<p>“Fine work!” Neale shouted, his voice full of
+laughter. “We made record time. But I’ll let
+somebody else furl that sail.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Neale!” gasped the girl, hobbling like a
+cripple. “I ca—can’t walk. I’m frozen stiff!”</p>
+
+<p>“Come on to the shanties. We’ll get warm.
+Take hold here, Aggie. You’ll be all right in a
+few minutes.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, dear!” she said. “I did not know I was
+so cold. But what a race it was, Neale! Ruth
+will give us fits.”</p>
+
+<p>“Won’t she?” chuckled Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“But what is this place, Neale?” Agnes went
+on. “What are these people doing here?”</p>
+
+<p>“Fishing. Those are frozen fish they are loading
+on that sledge. Oh! There it goes! We
+can’t get ashore on that, after all.”</p>
+
+<p>“‘Fishing’?” repeated the amazed girl. “How
+do they fish through the ice? I don’t see any
+holes.”</p>
+
+<div style='text-align:center'>
+<img id='ilink03' src='images/illus-003.jpg' alt=''/>
+<p class='caption'>“He fairly dragged her from under the flapping sail.”</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>“No. The holes wouldn’t stay open long, as
+cold as it is out here. It’s about twenty below
+zero right now, my lady, and I’m keeping a sharp
+eye on your nose.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” gasped Agnes, putting her mittened
+hand tentatively to her nose. “Is that why
+you told me to keep my collar up over my mouth
+and nose?”</p>
+
+<p>“It is!” declared the boy, rubbing his own face
+vigorously. “If you see any white spot on anybody’s
+face up here in this weather, grab a handful
+of snow and begin rubbing the spot.”</p>
+
+<p>“Mercy!” Agnes murmured, with a gay little
+laugh. “Lucky Trix Severn doesn’t come up
+here. She uses rice powder dreadfully, and folks
+would think she was being frost-bitten.”</p>
+
+<p>“Uh-huh!” agreed Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“But you haven’t told me how they fish,” said
+the girl, as they approached nearer to the huts and
+she was able to walk better.</p>
+
+<p>“Through the ice of course,” he laughed.
+“Only you don’t see the holes. They are inside
+the huts.”</p>
+
+<p>“You don’t mean it, Neale?”</p>
+
+<p>“To be sure I mean it! Some of those big
+shanties house whole families. You see there are
+children and dogs. They have pot stoves which
+warm the huts to a certain degree, and on which
+they cook. And they have bunks built against the
+walls, with plenty of bedding.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, I should think they would get their death
+of cold!” gasped the girl.</p>
+
+<p>“That’s just what they don’t get,” Neale rejoined.
+“You can bet there are no ‘white plague’
+patients here. This atmosphere will kill tubercular
+germs like a hammer kills a flea.”</p>
+
+<p>“Goodness, Neale!” giggled Agnes. “Did you
+ever kill a flea with a hammer?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yep. Sand-flea,” he assured her, grinning.
+“Oh! I’m one quick lad, Aggie.”</p>
+
+<p>She really thought he was joking, however, until
+she had looked into two or three of the huts. People
+really did live in them, as she saw. In the
+middle of the plank floors was a well, with open
+water kept clear of frost. The set-lines were fastened
+to pegs in the planks and the “flags” announced
+when a fish was on the hook.</p>
+
+<p>A smiling woman, done up like an Eskimo, invited
+them into one shack. She had evidently not
+seen the scooter arrive from down the lake and
+thought the boy and girl had walked out from
+Coxford.</p>
+
+<p>“Hello!” she said. “Goin’ to try your hands
+at fishin’? You’re town folks, ain’t you?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” said Agnes, politely. “We come from
+Milton.”</p>
+
+<p>“Lawsy! That’s a fur ways,” said the woman.
+She was peeling potatoes, and a kettle was boiling
+on the stove at one side. The visitors knew
+by the odor that there was corned beef in the pot.
+“You goin’ to try your hands?” the woman repeated.</p>
+
+<p>“No,” said Neale. “We are with a party that
+is going up to Red Deer Lodge.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! That’s the Birdsall place. You can’t
+git up there tonight. It’s too fur.”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess we shall stay in Coxford,” admitted
+Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“Didn’t know but you an’ your sister wanted to
+fish. Old Manny Cox got ketched with rheumatics
+so that he had to give up fishin’ this season. I can
+hire you his shanty.”</p>
+
+<p>“No, thank you!” murmured Agnes, her eyes
+round with interest.</p>
+
+<p>“I let it for a week or more to two gals,” said
+the woman complacently. “Got five dollars out of
+’em for Manny. He’ll be needin’ the money.
+Better stay awhile and try the fishin’.”</p>
+
+<p>“Goodness! Two girls alone?” asked Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. Younger’n you are, too. But they
+knowed their way around, I guess,” said the
+woman. “Good lookin’ gals. Nice clo’es. Town
+folks, I guess. Mebbe they wasn’t older’n my
+Bob, and he’s just turned twelve.”</p>
+
+<p>“Twelve years old! And two girls alone?”
+murmured Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, there ain’t nobody to hurt you here. We
+don’t never need no constable out here on the ice.
+There’s plenty of women folks—Miz’ Ashtable,
+and Hank Crummet’s wife, and Mary Boley and
+her boys. Oh, lots o’ women here. We can help
+make money in the winter.</p>
+
+<p>“There! See that set-line bob?”</p>
+
+<p>She dropped the potato she was paring and
+crossed to the well. One of the flags had dipped.
+With a strong hand she reeled in the wet line. At
+its end was a big pickerel—the biggest pickerel
+the visitors had ever seen.</p>
+
+<p>“There!” exclaimed the woman. “Sorry I
+didn’t git that before Joe Jagson went with his
+load of fish. That’s four pound if it weighs an
+ounce.”</p>
+
+<p>She shook the flopping fish off the hook into a
+basket and then hung the basket outside the door.
+In the frosty air the fish did not need to be packed
+in ice. It would literally be ice within a very
+few minutes.</p>
+
+<p>“Got to hang ’em up to keep the dogs from
+gettin’ them,” said the woman, rebaiting the hook
+and then returning to her potato paring. “Can’t
+leave ’em in a creel in the water, neither; pike
+would come along an’ eat ’em clean to the bone.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” gasped Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. Regular cannibals, them pike,” said the
+woman. “But all big fish will eat little ones.”</p>
+
+<p>“What kind of fish do you catch?” Neale asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Pickerel and pike, whitebait (we calls ’em
+that), perch, some lake bass and once in a while
+a lake trout. Trout’s out o’ season. We don’t
+durst sell ’em. But we eat ’em. They ain’t no
+‘season,’ I tell ’em, for a boy’s appetite; and I got
+three boys and my man to feed.”</p>
+
+<p>At that moment there was a great shouting and
+barking of dogs outside, and Neale and Agnes
+went out of the hut to learn what it meant. The
+Corner House girl whispered to the boy:</p>
+
+<p>“What do you think about those two twelve
+year old girls coming here to stay and fish through
+the ice?”</p>
+
+<p>“Great little sports,” commented Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“Well,” exclaimed Agnes, “that’s being too
+much of a sport, if you ask me!”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink09'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER IX—A COLD SCENT</a></h2>
+
+<p>The barking of the dogs was in answer to the
+booming note that Tom Jonah sent echoing across
+the ice. Agnes and Neale found that the two big
+ice-boats were near at hand.</p>
+
+<p>As one of the crew of Mr. Howbridge’s boat
+owned the scooter that Neale and Agnes had come
+up the lake on, that owner wished to recover his
+abandoned ice-boat. Besides, it was not more
+than two miles over the ice to Coxford, and the
+wind was going down with the sun. The big boats
+would have made slow work of it beating in to the
+slab-town on the western shore of the lake.</p>
+
+<p>Neale and Agnes ran out across the ice to meet
+their friends. Most of the party were glad indeed
+to get on their feet, for the ride up the lake had
+been a cold one.</p>
+
+<p>In fact, Tess could scarcely walk when she got
+out of her seat, and Dot tumbled right down on the
+ice, almost weeping.</p>
+
+<p>“I—I guess I haven’t got any feet,” the smallest
+Corner House girl half sobbed. “I can’t feel
+’em.”</p>
+
+<p>“Course you’ve got feet, Dot,” said Sammy,
+staggering a good deal himself when he walked
+toward her. “Just you jump up and down like
+this,” and he proceeded to follow his own advice.</p>
+
+<p>“But won’t we break through the ice?” murmured
+the smallest Corner House girl.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, Dot! do you s’pose,” demanded Tess,
+“that you can jump hard enough to break through
+two feet of ice?”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I never tried it before, did I?” demanded
+Dot. “How should <i>I</i> know what might happen to
+the old ice?”</p>
+
+<p>Agnes hurried the little ones over to the shanty
+of the friendly fisher-woman, where they could get
+warm and be sheltered from the raw wind that still
+puffed down in gusts from the hills.</p>
+
+<p>Tom Jonah had jumped out of the cockpit of the
+ice-boat and found himself immediately in the
+middle of what Luke Shepard called “a fine ruction.”</p>
+
+<p>“Canines to right of him, canines to left of
+him, volleyed and thundered!” laughed the college
+youth. “Hey! call off your fish-hounds, or Tom
+Jonah will eat them up.”</p>
+
+<p>One cur was already running away yelping and
+limping; the others took notice that the old dog
+had powerful jaws. But Ruth insisted that Tom
+Jonah be put on a leash, and Luke meekly obeyed.
+Indeed, he was likely to do almost anything that
+the oldest Corner House girl told him to do, “right
+up to jumping through the ring of a doughnut!”
+his sister whispered to Mrs. MacCall in great
+glee.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, my lassie,” was the housekeeper’s comment,
+“he might be mindin’ a much worse mistress
+than our Ruthie.”</p>
+
+<p>Nothing that Ruth could or did do in most matters
+was wrong in Mrs. MacCall’s opinion, even if
+she did criticize the Kenways’ charity. If Luke
+Shepard some day expected to get Ruth for his
+wife, the housekeeper considered that it was only
+right he should first learn to obey Ruth’s behests
+in all things.</p>
+
+<p>Ruth had a word to say to Neale and Agnes at
+this time. She pointed out to those two restless
+and reckless younger ones that there must be no
+such venturesome escapades during the remainder
+of this winter vacation as that connected with the
+ice-scooter.</p>
+
+<p>“If you have no respect for your own bones,
+think of our feelings,” she concluded. “Why! I
+almost had heart disease when I saw that horrid
+scooter fly past with Agnes up in the air as though
+she were on a flying trapeze.”</p>
+
+<p>“Shucks, Ruth!” said Neale, “you know I
+wouldn’t let any harm come to Aggie.”</p>
+
+<p>“Now, Neale,” returned the older girl, “how
+would you keep her from getting hurt if that ice-boat
+broke in two, for instance?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, well—”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s what I thought!” snapped Ruth.
+“You had not thought of that.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t scold him! Don’t scold Neale!” begged
+Agnes. “He’s all right.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, no, he isn’t,” said Ruth grimly. “One
+side of him is left! And you will promise to be
+good or I’ll make Mr. Howbridge send Neale home,
+right from here.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” cried her sister. “You would not be so
+mean, Ruthie Kenway.”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t know but I would,” Ruth rejoined. “I
+don’t think so much of boys, anyway—”</p>
+
+<p>“Not until they get to be collegians,” whispered
+Neale shrilly from behind his hand.</p>
+
+<p>Ruth’s eyes snapped at that, and she marched
+away without another word. Mr. Howbridge refrained
+from commenting upon the incident, for
+he saw that Ruth had said quite all that was necessary.</p>
+
+<p>Neale and Agnes were much abashed. They
+followed the others slowly toward the village on
+the ice. Neale said:</p>
+
+<p>“Well, if she says I can’t go any farther I’ll
+stay right here and fish until you come back,
+Aggie.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Neale! You wouldn’t!”</p>
+
+<p>“Why not? Maybe I’d make a little money. If
+two twelve year old girls could stand it for a week
+here, I don’t see why I couldn’t stand it for three
+weeks.”</p>
+
+<p>“I’ve been thinking about those two girls that
+woman told us about,” said Agnes with sudden
+eagerness.</p>
+
+<p>“What about ’em?”</p>
+
+<p>“Do you s’pose they were girls, Neale O’Neil?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why! what do you mean? How do I know?
+The woman said they were.”</p>
+
+<p>“But two <i>girls</i>—and only twelve! It doesn’t
+seem probable. I should think the police—”</p>
+
+<p>“Didn’t you hear that woman say there were no
+constables out here on the ice?” said Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t care! I’m suspicious,” declared
+Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“Not of that fisher-woman?” asked the boy,
+puzzled indeed.</p>
+
+<p>“No, no! But no two girls in this world would
+ever have considered coming out here on the ice
+to fish. How ridiculous!”</p>
+
+<p>“Say! what are you trying to get at, Agnes
+Kenway?” demanded her friend. “You do have
+the craziest ideas!”</p>
+
+<p>“Do I, Mr. Smartie?” she returned. “At least
+they are ideas. You never seem to suspect a living
+thing, Neale O’Neil.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! I give it up,” he groaned. “You are too
+much for me. I’m lashed to the post and you have
+left me behind.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, do come on!” exclaimed Agnes, hastily
+dragging at his jacket sleeve. “If you don’t know
+what I’m about, just keep still and listen.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I’ll do that little thing for you,” returned
+Neale. “I can be as dumb as a mute quahog with
+the lockjaw—just watch me!”</p>
+
+<p>He tagged on behind Agnes with much interest.
+The girl hurried to the shack into which the little
+folks had been taken for warmth. Mrs. MacCall
+was there with them, talking with the genial fisher-woman.</p>
+
+<p>“Hech!” exclaimed the housekeeper, warming
+her blue hands, “but this is a strange way to live.
+’Tis worse than sheep herding in the Highlands.
+’Tis so!”</p>
+
+<p>“’Tain’t so bad,” said the woman. “And
+there’s good money in the fish. We are mostly all
+Coxford people here—or folks from back in the
+hills. Few stragglers come here to bother us.”</p>
+
+<p>“But you said two strangers had been here this
+winter,” Agnes interposed, eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>“I said so,” the woman agreed. “Two stragglers.
+Two girls,” and she laughed. “But they
+didn’t stay long. They kept to themselves like,
+and never did us any harm.”</p>
+
+<p>“Say, Maw!” The voice came out of a shadowy
+corner. It was gloomy in the shack, for the
+sun had now dipped below the hills and twilight
+had come.</p>
+
+<p>“That’s my Bob,” said the woman. “He’s
+about the age of them two gals.”</p>
+
+<p>“They wasn’t two gals, Maw,” said Bob from
+the darkness.</p>
+
+<p>“What d’you mean?”</p>
+
+<p>“One was a boy. Yes, she was—a boy! We
+kids found it out, and that’s why them two lit out
+over night.”</p>
+
+<p>“Good gracious, Bob! What are you sayin’?”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s right,” said the voice from the dark
+corner, stubbornly. “They was brother and
+sister. They owned up. Run away from somewhere,
+I guess. And then they run away from
+here.”</p>
+
+<p>Agnes pinched Neale’s arm. “What did I tell
+you?” she whispered.</p>
+
+<p>“Ouch! I don’t know. You’ve told me so
+many things, Aggie,” he complained.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t you remember what Mr. Howbridge told
+us about the Birdsall twins and the picture he sent
+out to the police? He showed us that, too.”</p>
+
+<p>“Jumping Jupiter!” gasped the amazed Neale.
+“Why—why, <i>she</i>,” pointing to the fisher-woman,
+“didn’t say anything about the twins.”</p>
+
+<p>“Listen!” exclaimed Agnes again; and as Mrs.
+MacCall had taken the three younger children out
+of the shack, Agnes began to interrogate the
+woman as to the appearance of the strange girls
+who had remained for a week at the village on the
+ice.</p>
+
+<p>Yes, they were both slim, and dark, and looked
+boyish enough—both of them. They seemed well
+behaved. She didn’t believe Bob—</p>
+
+<p>“I tell you I know,” put in Bob from his corner.
+“One was a boy. He called the other by a
+girl name all right. Rowly—or Rowny—or
+sumpin’—”</p>
+
+<p>“Rowena!” cried Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“Mebbe,” admitted Bob.</p>
+
+<p>“For the land of liberty’s sake!” exclaimed his
+mother suddenly, “I’d like to know how you are so
+sure ’bout one bein’ a boy?”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I’ll tell you,” grumbled Bob. “’Cause
+he licked me! Yes, he did. Licked me good and
+proper. No girl could ha’ done that, you bet!”
+said the disgruntled Bob.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, Bob! I am ashamed of you!” said his
+mother.</p>
+
+<p>“You needn’t be. He could fight, that fellow!”</p>
+
+<p>“But did you think they were both girls till you
+got into this fight?” Neale asked, now becoming
+interested.</p>
+
+<p>“Bet you. We thought we could get some of
+their lines. They had more’n enough. We went
+over there to Manny Cox’s shack, and she that
+was a girl was alone. So we took the lines.”</p>
+
+<p>“Now, Bob!” murmured his mother.</p>
+
+<p>“Guess a constable here wouldn’t be a bad thing
+after all,” chuckled Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“Go on,” ordered Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, that girl just cried and scolded. But the
+other one came back before me and Hank and
+Buddie got away.”</p>
+
+<p>“The one you think was a boy?” asked Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“One I know was a boy—since he fought me.
+He didn’t do no cryin’. He squared right off,
+skirts an’ all, and jest lambasted me. And when
+Hank tried to put in an oar, he lambasted him.
+Buddie run, or he’d ’ve been licked, too, I guess.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well!” exclaimed Bob’s mother. “I never
+did! And you never said a word about it!”</p>
+
+<p>“What was the use?” asked her son. “We was
+licked. And the next morning that boy-girl and
+his sister was gone. We didn’t see ’em no more.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is right,” said the woman thoughtfully.
+“They got away jest like that. I never did know
+what become of ’em or what they went for.”</p>
+
+<p>Agnes dragged Neale out of the shack. She
+was excited.</p>
+
+<p>“Let’s find Mr. Howbridge!” she cried. “He
+ought to know about this. I just feel sure those
+twins have been here in this fisher-town.”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink10'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER X—INTO THE WILDERNESS</a></h2>
+
+<p>But the lawyer and guardian of the runaway
+Birdsall twins was not so easily convinced that
+Agnes had found the trail of the lost Ralph and
+Rowena. It seemed preposterous that the twins
+should have joined these rough fisherfolk and lived
+with them in the ice-village.</p>
+
+<p>The party from Milton waited at the village for
+an hour while the lawyer cross-questioned the
+inhabitants. It was not that any of these people
+wished to hobble Mr. Howbridge’s curiosity regarding
+the “stragglers,” as they called the
+strangers who sometimes joined the community;
+but nobody had considered it his or her business
+to question or examine in any way the two unknown
+girls (if they were girls) who had occupied
+Manny Cox’s shack for a week.</p>
+
+<p>After all, the boy, Bob, and his mates, gave the
+most convincing testimony regarding the strangers.
+He was positive that one of the stragglers
+had been a boy—a very sturdy and pugilistic one
+for a twelve-year-old lad.</p>
+
+<p>“And that might fit young Ralph Birdsall’s
+reputation, as I got it from Rodgers, the butler,”
+said Mr. Howbridge. “Ralph has to be stirred
+by Rowena to fight; but, once stirred, Rodgers
+says he can fight like a wildcat.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, what a horrid boy!” murmured Tess,
+who heard this. “I guess I’m glad those twins
+didn’t come with us after all.”</p>
+
+<p>“But, Mr. Howbridge,” asked Ruth, “does it
+seem possible that they could get away up here
+alone?”</p>
+
+<p>“That is difficult to say. Nobody knows how
+much money they had when they left Arlington.
+They might have come as far as this. If they had
+wished to, I mean.”</p>
+
+<p>It was getting quite dark, now, and the children
+were tired and hungry. The party could spend
+no more time at the fishing village. They set out
+across the ice for Coxford.</p>
+
+<p>Neale took Dot pick-a-pack and Luke shouldered
+Tess, although the latter felt much embarrassed by
+this proceeding. Ruth had to urge her to remain
+upon the collegian’s shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>“Really, I’m quite too big to play this way,” she
+objected.</p>
+
+<p>But she was tired—she had to admit that.
+Sammy made no complaint; but his short legs
+were weary enough before they reached the shore.</p>
+
+<p>Oil lamps on posts lit the few streets of Coxford.
+Most of the slab houses looked as though
+the wind, with a good puff, could blow them down.
+The forest came down to the edge of the village.
+If there should be a forest fire on this side of the
+mountain range, the slab-town would surely be
+destroyed.</p>
+
+<p>Hedden, Mr. Howbridge’s man, had prepared
+things here for the party, as well as at Culberton.
+On the main street of the little town was what
+passed for a hotel. At this time of year it was
+but little patronized.</p>
+
+<p>Therefore the lawyer’s man had chartered the
+house, as well as the family that owned it, to make
+the holiday vacation party comfortable over one
+night.</p>
+
+<p>Roaring fires, hot supper, feather beds, and
+plenty of woolen blankets awaited the crowd from
+Milton at this backwoods hostelry. Mr. Dan Durkin,
+who was the proprietor of the Coxford Hotel,
+and his hospitable wife and daughters, could not
+do too much for the comfort of Mr. Howbridge and
+his friends.</p>
+
+<p>“We don’t have enough strangers here in winter
+time to keep us in mind of what city folks are
+like,” the hotel-keeper declared. “When Miz’
+Birdsall was alive, she and her man and the kids
+used to come through here three-four times ’twixt
+the first snow flurries an’ the spring break-up.
+They liked to see their camp up there in the hills
+durin’ the winter. But after Miz’ Birdsall died,
+he never came.”</p>
+
+<p>“And the children?” asked Mr. Howbridge,
+thoughtfully.</p>
+
+<p>“They did come in summer,” said Durkin; “but
+not in the winter.”</p>
+
+<p>“You haven’t seen them of late, have you?”
+questioned the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“Them twins? No. Nary hide nor hair of ’em.
+I tell you, ain’t nobody—scurcely—gets up here
+this time’ o’ year. ’Ceptin’ a few stragglers for
+the fishin’, perhaps. But we don’t see them here
+at the hotel. We don’t take in stragglers.”</p>
+
+<p>But he and his family, as has been said, did their
+very best for the party from Milton. The young
+folks slept soundly, and warmly, as well, and were
+really sorry to crawl out of the feather beds at
+seven o’clock the next morning when they were
+called to get ready for breakfast.</p>
+
+<p>The cold and the long ride of the day before
+seemed to have done nobody any harm. The balsam-laden
+air, when they went to the hotel porch
+for a breath of it before breakfast, seemed to
+search right down to the bottom of their lungs and
+invigorate them all. Surely, as Neale had told
+Agnes, no tubercular germ could live in such an
+atmosphere.</p>
+
+<p>“Just the same,” said Ruth, wisely, when
+Agnes mentioned this scientific statement fathered
+by the ex-circus boy, “you children keep well
+wrapped up. What is one man’s medicine is another
+man’s poison, Mrs. Mac often says. And
+it is so with germs, I guess. What will kill one
+germ, another germ thrives on. A bad cold up
+here will be almost sure to turn into pneumonia.
+So beware!”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t keep talking about being sick,” cried
+Cecile. “You are almost as bad as Neighbor.”
+“Neighbor” Henry Northrup lived next door to
+the Shepards and their Aunt Lorena, and was
+Luke’s very good friend. “Neighbor is forever
+talking about symptoms and diseases. After a
+half hour visit with him I always go home feeling
+as though I needed to call the doctor for some
+complaint.”</p>
+
+<p>They made a hearty and hilarious breakfast of
+country fare—fried pork and johnnycakes, with
+eggs and baked beans for “fillers.” Mrs. MacCall
+should not have tried to eat the crisply fried
+“crackling” as the farmers call the pork-rind;
+but she did. And one of the teeth on her upper
+plate snapped right off!</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, dear me, Mrs. Mac!” gasped Agnes.
+“And not a dentist for miles and miles, I suppose!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, well, I can get along without that one
+tooth.”</p>
+
+<p>“My pop’s got a new set of false teeth,” Sammy
+said soberly. “He’s just got ’em—all new and
+shiny.”</p>
+
+<p>“What did he do with the old ones he had?”
+asked Tess, interested.</p>
+
+<p>“Huh! I dunno. Throwed ’em away, I hope.
+Anyway,” said Sammy, who had had much experience
+in wearing made over clothing, “mom can’t
+cut them down and make me wear ’em!”</p>
+
+<p>The jangling of sleighbells hurried the party
+through breakfast. The little folks were first out
+upon the porch to look at the two pungs, filled
+with straw, and each drawn by a pair of heavy
+horses. The latter did not promise from their
+appearance a swift trip to Red Deer Lodge; but
+they were undoubtedly able to draw a heavy load
+through the deepest drifts in the forest.</p>
+
+<p>They set out very gayly from the little lakeside
+town. It was not a brilliantly sunshiny day, for
+a haze wrapped the mountain tops about and was
+creeping down toward the ice-covered lake.</p>
+
+<p>“There’s a storm gathering,” declared one of
+the men engaged to drive the Milton party into
+the woods. “I reckon you folks will git about all
+the snow you want for Christmas.”</p>
+
+<p>“At any rate, it won’t be a green Christmas up
+here,” Agnes said to Neale, who sat beside her in
+the second sled. “I don’t think it is nice at all
+not to have plenty of snow over Christmas and
+New Year’s.”</p>
+
+<p>“I’m with you there,” agreed the boy. “But
+I’m glad I haven’t got to shovel paths through
+these drifts,” he added, with a quick grin.</p>
+
+<p>They found the tote-road, as the path was called,
+quite filled with snow in some places. There were
+only the marks of the sleds that had gone up two
+days before with the servants and baggage and
+returned—these same two pungs in which the
+party now rode.</p>
+
+<p>The drifts were packed so hard that the horses
+drew the sleds right over the drifts, without breaking
+through more than an inch or two with their
+big hoofs. In some places they could trot heavily,
+jerking the sleds along at rather a good pace; but
+for most of the way the road was uphill, and the
+horses plodded slowly.</p>
+
+<p>The boys got out now and then to stretch their
+legs. Agnes, too, demanded this privilege, and
+tramped along beside Neale after the sleds on the
+uphill grades. Mainly the party was warm and
+comfortable, and cheerful voices, laughter, and
+song rang through the spruce woods as they traversed
+the forest-clad hills.</p>
+
+<p>Red Deer Lodge, it proved, was a long day’s
+journey from the lakeside into the wilderness.
+Never before had the Corner House girls and their
+friends visited so wild a place. But they foresaw
+no trouble in store for them—not even from the
+gathering storm.</p>
+
+<p>“Of course,” Agnes said, when she was tramping
+on one occasion with the boys behind the second
+sled, “there must be bears, and wolves, and
+catamounts, and all those, in these woods in summer.
+But they are all hidden away for the winter
+now, aren’t they, Neale?”</p>
+
+<p>“The bears are holed up,” he granted. “But
+the other varmints—”</p>
+
+<p>“What are those?”</p>
+
+<p>“That is what Uncle Bill Sorber calls most carnivorous
+animals,” laughed Neale. “Creatures
+that prey—”</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” ejaculated the wide-eared
+Sammy. “You don’t mean to say wild animals
+pray, do you? I never knew they were that religious!”</p>
+
+<p>“Good-<i>night</i>!” laughed Neale. “I mean those
+that prey on other animals—live on ’em, you know.
+<i>Prey</i> on ’em.”</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” murmured Sammy. “Just
+like the fleas on my bulldog, Buster?”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s enough! That’s enough!” groaned
+Neale. “No use trying to teach this boy anything.”</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” grumbled Sammy Pinkney. “They
+make me learn enough in school. Don’t you begin
+to pick on me out here in the woods, Neale
+O’Neil.”</p>
+
+<p>Just then Tom Jonah, who, his tongue hanging
+out, had been padding on ahead, suddenly uttered
+a loud bark and leaped out of the path. He went
+tearing away across the tops of the drifts and
+through the open wood through which the tote-road
+then passed.</p>
+
+<p>Out of a close-branched spruce just ahead of the
+big dog shot a tawny-gray body, and a fearsome
+yowl drowned the barking of the dog. But the
+creature that had created Tom Jonah’s excitement
+was running away.</p>
+
+<p>“Call off that dog!” shouted the head driver.
+“Want him all chawed up?”</p>
+
+<p>Tess stood up and began to scream for Tom
+Jonah to return. The old dog would obey her
+voice if no other.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! What <i>is</i> that?” cried Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>“Link,” said the driver, succinctly, as the beast
+uttered another angry howl which made the returning
+Tom Jonah turn to snarl in the stranger’s
+direction.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!”</p>
+
+<p>“He means <i>lynx</i>,” said Mr. Howbridge.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t, nuther,” snorted the driver. “There’s
+only one of him, so he’s a link. If they was two
+or more they’d be links.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Ah!” chuckled Luke Shepard. “And
+that one is now the ‘missing link.’ He was making
+tracks for the port of ‘missing links’ when he
+disappeared.”</p>
+
+<p>“He’s goin’ some. That dog give him a scare,”
+admitted the driver, as a third and more distant
+yowl floated back to them from the depths of the
+forest.</p>
+
+<p>The whole party, however, was impressed by the
+incident. More than Dot were disturbed by the
+thought of danger.</p>
+
+<p>“Just the same,” the smallest Corner House
+girl murmured in Tess’ ear. “I’m <i>not</i> going to
+throw my Alice-doll overboard, either for wolfs
+or linkses—so there!”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink11'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XI—EMBERS IN THE GRATE</a></h2>
+
+<p>Mr. Durkin of the Coxford Hotel had furnished
+the party with a hearty lunch to eat while they
+were en route to Red Deer Lodge, and Ruth had
+brought two big thermos bottles of hot tea, likewise
+prepared at the hotel. The drivers had their
+own lunches, and at noon the party halted in the
+shelter of a windbreak to breathe the horses and
+allow them to eat their oats.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. MacCall and the older girls complained of
+stiffness from sitting so long in the sledges. Riding
+so far in the cold was not altogether pleasant;
+there was no sunshine at all now. The gathering
+storm had overcast the entire sky, and as they went
+on after lunch a rising wind began moaning
+through the forest.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t see why the trees have to make such
+a meachin’ noise,” sighed Dot, as they climbed a
+steep hill so slowly that the rueful sound of the
+rising gale was quite audible.</p>
+
+<p>“Where did you get such a word, Dot?” demanded
+Ruth, smiling at her.</p>
+
+<p>“It is a good word. Uncle Rufus uses it,” declared
+the smallest Corner House girl. “And
+Uncle Rufus never uses bad words.”</p>
+
+<p>“Granted,” Ruth said. “But what does
+‘meachin’ mean?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, just as though the wind felt bad and was
+whimpering about it,” said Dot, with assurance.
+“It makes you all shivery to listen to it. And
+after we heard that link, and know that there
+are bears and wolfs about—O-o-oh! what’s that,
+Ruthie?”</p>
+
+<p>Something white had flashed right up in front of
+the noses of the first team of horses, and with
+great leaps broke away from the road. Tom
+Jonah was at the rear of the procession and did
+not at first see this bounding shape.</p>
+
+<p>Neale stood up in the second sleigh and clapped
+his hands sharply together. The white ball
+stopped—halting right in a snow-patch; being so
+much like the snow itself in color that those in
+the sledges could scarcely see it. The sharp
+crack of Neale’s ungloved palms seemed to make
+the creature cower in the snow. It halted for a
+moment only, however.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! The bunny!” gasped Tess, standing up
+to see.</p>
+
+<p>“A big white hare,” Mr. Howbridge said. “I
+had no idea there were such big ones around here.”</p>
+
+<p>The hare burst into high speed again and disappeared,
+almost before Tom Jonah set out for
+him.</p>
+
+<p>“Come back, Tom Jonah!” shouted Tess.
+“Why, you couldn’t catch that bunny if you had
+started ahead of him.”</p>
+
+<p>“Wow! that’s a good one,” said Neale O’Neil.
+“Tell you what, Aggie, those small sisters of yours
+are right full of new ideas.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is what teacher says is the matter with
+Robbie Foote,” remarked Sammy, thoughtfully.</p>
+
+<p>“How is that?” asked Agnes, expecting some
+illuminating information from the standpoint of
+a lower grade pupil.</p>
+
+<p>“Why,” Sammy explained, “teacher asked Rob
+what was the plural of man. Rob told her ‘men.’
+Then, of course, she had to keep right on at it. If
+you do answer her right she goes right at you
+again,” scoffed Sammy. “That’s why I don’t
+often answer her right if I can help it. It only
+makes you trouble.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” chuckled Neale. “A Daniel come
+to judgment.”</p>
+
+<p>“Wait. Let’s hear the rest of Sam’s story,”
+begged Agnes. “What was Robbie Foote’s
+idea?”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s what teacher said—he was full of ideas,
+only they were silly,” went on Sammy. “When
+he’d told her ‘men’ was the plural of ‘man,’ she
+said: ‘What is the plural of child?’ He told her
+‘twins.’ What d’you know about that? She said
+his ideas were silly.”</p>
+
+<p>“I’m not so sure he was silly,” laughed Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“I wonder what has become of those Birdsall
+twins,” Agnes said thoughtfully. “Up here in
+this wild country—”</p>
+
+<p>“Nonsense!” exclaimed Neale. “You don’t
+know anything of the kind. Those two girls that
+fisher-woman spoke about—”</p>
+
+<p>“One of them was a boy.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, that doesn’t prove anything. We don’t
+even know that the two at the fisher-village were
+twins.”</p>
+
+<p>“But they were brother and sister roaming
+about—runaways and alone.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Aggie!” he cried, “don’t make up your
+mind a thing is so without getting some real evidence
+first. Mr. Howbridge asked, and he is not
+at all sure those stragglers were the twins.”</p>
+
+<p>“Somehow I just feel that they were,” sighed
+the second Corner House girl, with a confidence
+that Neale saw it was useless to try to shake.</p>
+
+<p>When Agnes Kenway made up her mind to a
+thing Neale wagged his head and gave it up.</p>
+
+<p>The party was quite too jolly, however, to bother
+much about the lost Birdsall twins just then.
+Even Mr. Howbridge had said nothing about them
+since his cross-examination of the hotel-keeper
+back at Coxford.</p>
+
+<p>If the twins had come this way, for instance,
+attempting to reach Red Deer Lodge, surely some
+of the people of Coxford or the woodsmen going
+back and forth on the tote-road would have met
+and recognized them. And if Ralph was dressed
+in some of his sister’s clothing, they would have
+been the more surely marked.</p>
+
+<p>Two girls of twelve or so traveling into the
+woods? It seemed quite ridiculous.</p>
+
+<p>For this was indeed a wild country through
+which the tote-road ran. The fact of its being a
+wilderness was marked even to the eyes of those
+so unfamiliar with such scenes.</p>
+
+<p>Now and then a fox barked from the brakes in
+the lowland. Jays in droves winged across the
+clearings with raucous cries. More than one
+trampled place beside the thickets of edible brush
+showed where the deer herd had browsed within
+stone’s throw of the tote-road.</p>
+
+<p>And then, as the party came closer to the ridge
+on which Red Deer Lodge was built, and the twilight
+began to gather, the big white owls of these
+northern forests went flapping through the tree-lanes,
+skimming the snowcrust for the rabbits and
+other small animals that might be afoot even this
+early in the evening.</p>
+
+<p>The spread of the wings of the first of these
+monster owls that they saw was quite six feet from
+tip to tip, and it almost scared Dot Kenway.
+With an eerie “Hoo! Hoo! Hoo-oo!” and a swish
+of wings it crossed the road just ahead of the
+horses, and made even those plodding beasts toss
+their heads and prick up their ears.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, look at that ’normous great white
+chicken!” shouted Dot. “Did you ever?”</p>
+
+<p>“It is an owl, child,” said Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“An owl as big as <i>that</i>?” gasped the smaller
+girl. “Why—why—it could carry you right off
+like the eagle that Mr. Lycurgus Billet set his
+Sue for bait! Don’t you ’member?”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess I do remember!” Tess declared.
+“But an owl isn’t like an eagle. It isn’t so savage.”</p>
+
+<p>The party had come a long way, and the steaming
+horses were now weary. As evening approached
+the cold increased in intensity, while
+the mournfully sounding wind promised stern
+weather. The members of the party from Milton
+began to congratulate each other that they were
+arriving at the Lodge before a big storm should
+sweep over this northern country.</p>
+
+<p>“And suppose we get snowed in and aren’t able
+to get out of the woods till spring?” suggested
+Cecile, not without some small fear that such
+might be a possibility.</p>
+
+<p>“There goes little Miss Fidget!” cried her
+brother. “Always worrying over the worst that
+may happen.”</p>
+
+<p>“But I suppose we could be snowbound up
+here?” suggested Ruth, although scarcely with
+anxiety.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes!” agreed Luke, laughing. “And pigs
+might fly. But they tell me they are awful uncertain
+birds.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t listen to him, Ruthie,” said Cecile.
+“We may have to stay here all winter long.”</p>
+
+<p>“Then I only hope Mr. Howbridge sent up grub
+enough to see us through till spring,” put in the
+collegian gayly. “For I can foresee right now
+that this keen air is going to give me the appetite
+of an Eskimo.”</p>
+
+<p>It was a long climb to the top of the ridge on
+which the Birdsalls had built their rustic home.
+When the party came in sight of it the lamps
+were already lighted and these beckoned cheerfully
+to the arrivals while they were still a long
+way off.</p>
+
+<p>The private road which had branched off from
+the regular tote-road at the foot of the ridge was
+easy to ascend beside some of the hills they had
+climbed. The teams, however, were not to be
+urged out of a walk.</p>
+
+<p>There was a sudden flare of sulphurous light
+over the wooded caps of the mountains to the west
+of the ridge; but this lasted only a few minutes.
+The sun was then smothered in the mists as it
+sank to rest. Dusk almost at once filled the aisles
+of the forest.</p>
+
+<p>On the summit of the ridge about the big,
+sprawling, rustic house only shade trees had been
+allowed to stand. The land was cleared and tilled
+to some extent. At least, there was plenty of open
+space around the Lodge and the log barns and the
+outbuildings.</p>
+
+<p>Somebody was on watch, for the big entrance
+door opened before the sleds reached the steps,
+and yellow lamplight shone out across the porch.
+Hedden stood in the doorway, while another man
+ran down to assist with the bags and bundles.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, what a homelike looking place!” Ruth
+cried, quite as amazed as the other visitors by the
+appearance of the Lodge.</p>
+
+<p>Aside from the fact that the house was built of
+round logs with the bark peeled off, it did not seem
+to be at all rough or of crude construction. There
+were two floors and a garret. The entrance hall
+seemed as big as a barn.</p>
+
+<p>It was cozy and warm, however, despite its size.
+There was a gallery all around this hall at the
+level of the second floor, and a stairway went up
+on either side. At the rear was a huge fireplace,
+and this was heaped with logs which gave off both
+light and heat. There was a chandelier dropped
+from the ceiling, however, and acetylene gas flared
+from the burners of this fixture.</p>
+
+<p>The whole party crowded to the hearth where
+benches and chairs were drawn up in a wide circle
+before the flames. The maids relieved Mrs. MacCall
+and the girls of their outer wraps and overshoes.
+The boys had been shown where they were
+to leave their caps and coats.</p>
+
+<p>Such a hilarious crowd as they were! Jokes
+and cheerful gossip were the order of this hour of
+rest. With all but one member of the party!
+There was one very serious face, and this was the
+countenance of the youngest of the four Kenway
+sisters.</p>
+
+<p>“Dorothy Kenway! what is the matter with
+you?” demanded Tess, at last seeing the expression
+on the face of her little sister.</p>
+
+<p>Dot had been gazing all about the room with
+amazed eyes until this question came. Then with
+gravity she asked:</p>
+
+<p>“Tessie! didn’t Mr. Howbridge say this was a
+lodge?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, yes; this is Red Deer Lodge, child,” rejoined
+Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“But—but, Tess! you know it isn’t a lodge, nor
+a room where they have lodges! Now, is it?!”</p>
+
+<p>“Why—why—”</p>
+
+<p>“It can’t be!” went on the smaller girl with
+great insistence. “You know that was a lodge
+where we went night before last to have our
+Christmas tree on Meadow Street.”</p>
+
+<p>“A <i>lodge</i>?” gasped Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. You know it was. And there was a
+pulpit and chairs on a platform at both ends of
+the lodge. And lodges are held there. I know,
+’cause Becky Goronofsky’s father belongs to one
+that meets there. She said so. And he wears a
+little white apron with a blue border and a sash
+over his shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>“Now,” said the earnest Dot, “there’s nothing
+like that here, so it’s not a lodge at all. I don’t
+see why they call it a red lodge for deers.”</p>
+
+<p>Tess would have been tempted to call on Mr.
+Howbridge himself for an explanation of this
+seeming mystery had the lawyer not been just
+then in conference with Hedden in a corner of the
+room. The butler had beckoned his employer
+away from the others.</p>
+
+<p>“What is it, Hedden?” asked the lawyer.
+“Has something gone wrong?”</p>
+
+<p>“Not with the arrangements for the comfort of
+your party, Mr. Howbridge,” the man assured
+him. “But when we came in here yesterday (and
+I unlocked the door myself with the key you gave
+me) I found that somebody had recently occupied
+the Lodge.”</p>
+
+<p>“You don’t mean it! Somebody broken in!
+Some thief?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, sir. I went around to all the windows and
+doors. Nobody had broken in. Whoever it was
+must have had a key, too.”</p>
+
+<p>“But who was it? What did the intruder do?”</p>
+
+<p>“I find nothing disturbed, sir. Nothing of importance.
+But one room, at least, had been used
+recently. It is a sitting-room upstairs—right
+near this main hall. There had been a fire in the
+grate up there. When we came in yesterday the
+embers were still glowing. But I could find no
+intruder anywhere about the Lodge, sir.”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink12'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XII—MYSTERY AND FUN</a></h2>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge was evidently somewhat impressed
+by Hedden’s report. He stared gravely
+for a minute at his grizzled butler. Then he
+nodded.</p>
+
+<p>“Take me upstairs and show me which room
+you mean, Hedden,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir. This way, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>He led the lawyer toward the nearest stairway.
+They mounted to the gallery. Then the man led
+his employer down a passage and turned short
+into a doorway. The room they entered was
+really on the other side of the chimney from the
+big entrance hall.</p>
+
+<p>It was a small, cozy den. Mr. Howbridge looked
+the place over keenly, scrutinizing the furnishings
+before he glanced at the open coal grate to which
+Hedden sought to draw his attention first of all.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah. Yes,” said the lawyer, thoughtfully.
+“A work-basket. Low rocker. A dressing table.
+Couch. This, Hedden, was Mrs. Birdsall’s private
+sitting-room when she was alive. I never
+saw the house before, but I have heard Birdsall
+describe it.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir?”</p>
+
+<p>“Mrs. Birdsall spent a good deal of her time
+indoors in this room, and the children with her.
+So he said. And you found live embers in the
+grate there?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir,” said the butler, his own eyes big
+with wonder.</p>
+
+<p>“No other signs of anybody having been here?”</p>
+
+<p>“Not that I could see,” said Hedden.</p>
+
+<p>“Strange—if anybody had been in here who had
+a key. Have you seen Ike M’Graw?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, sir. The men who brought us up here
+said the man had gone away—had been away for
+a week, sir—but would return tonight.”</p>
+
+<p>“Then he was not the person who built the fire
+the embers of which you found. The coals would
+not have burned for a week. He is the person
+who has a key to the Lodge, and nobody else.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“Whoever got in here, of course, either departed
+when you came, Hedden, or before. Did
+you notice any tracks about the house?”</p>
+
+<p>“Plenty, sir. But only of beasts and birds.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ah-ha! Are the animals as tame as that up
+here?”</p>
+
+<p>“There were footprints that the men from town
+assured me were those of a big cat of some kind,
+and there were dog footprints; only the men said
+they were those of wolves. They say the beasts
+are getting hungry early in the season, because
+of the deep and early snow, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“Humph! Better say nothing to the children
+about that,” said Mr. Howbridge. “Of course,
+this party’s being here will keep any marauding
+animals at a distance. We won’t care for that
+sort of visitor.”</p>
+
+<p>“I think there is no danger, sir. I will tell the
+chef to throw out no table-scraps, and to feed that
+big dog we have brought in the back kitchen.
+Then there will be nothing to attract the wild
+creatures to the door.”</p>
+
+<p>“Good idea,” Mr. Howbridge said. “And I
+will warn them all tomorrow not to leave the
+vicinity of the Lodge alone. When Ike M’Graw
+arrives we shall be all right. This vicinity is his
+natural habitat, and he will know all that’s right
+to do, and what not to do.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge still looked about the room.
+The thing that interested him most was the mystery
+of the intruder who had built the fire in the
+grate. Mrs. Birdsall’s sitting-room! And the
+lawyer knew from hearing the story repeated
+again and again by the sorrowing widower, that
+the woman had been brought in here after her
+fall from the horse and had died upon the couch in
+the corner of the room.</p>
+
+<p>He wondered.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile the crowd of young people below
+were comforted with tea and crackers before they
+went to their bedrooms to change their clothes for
+dinner. Mr. Howbridge had brought the customs
+of his own formal household to Red Deer Lodge,
+and, knowing how particular the lawyer was, Ruth
+Kenway had warned the others to come prepared
+to dress for dinner.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. MacCall, after drinking her third cup of
+tea, went off with the chief maid to view the house
+and learn something about it. The Scotch woman
+was very capable and had governed Mr. Howbridge’s
+own home before she went to the old Corner
+House to keep straight the household lines
+there for the Kenways.</p>
+
+<p>Her situation here at the Lodge was one between
+the serving people and the family; but the latter,
+especially the smaller girls, would have been woeful
+indeed had Mrs. MacCall not sat at the table
+with them and been one of the family as she was
+at home in Milton.</p>
+
+<p>The girls were shown to their two big rooms on
+the second floor, and found them warm and cozy.
+They were heated by wood fires in drum-stoves.
+Ike M’Graw, general caretaker of the Lodge, had
+long since piled each wood box in the house full
+with billets of hard wood.</p>
+
+<p>Neale and Luke and Sammy were given another
+room off the gallery above the main hall. There
+they washed, and freshened up their apparel, and
+otherwise made themselves more presentable.
+Even Sammy looked a little less grubby than
+usual when they came down to the big fire again.</p>
+
+<p>It was black dark outside by this time. The
+wind was still moaning in the forest, and when
+they went to the door the fugitive snowflakes
+drifted against one’s cheek.</p>
+
+<p>“Going to be a bad night, I guess,” Neale said,
+coming back from an observation, just as the girls
+came down the stairway. “Oh, look! see ’em all
+fussed up!”</p>
+
+<p>The girls had shaken out their furbelows, and
+now came down smiling and preening not a little.
+Mr. Howbridge appeared in a Tuxedo coat.</p>
+
+<p>“Wish I’d brought my ‘soup to nuts,’” admitted
+Luke Shepard. “This is going to be a
+dress-up affair. I thought we were coming into
+the wilderness to rough it.”</p>
+
+<p>“All the roughing it will be done outside the
+house, young man,” said Cecile to her brother.
+“You must be on your very best behavior inside.”</p>
+
+<p>Hedden’s assistant announced dinner, and Mr.
+Howbridge offered his arm to Mrs. MacCall, who
+had just descended the stairway in old-fashioned
+rustling black silk.</p>
+
+<p>Immediately Luke joined the procession with
+Ruth on his arm, and Neale followed with Agnes,
+giggling of course. Cecile made Sammy walk beside
+her, and he was really proud to do this, only
+he would not admit it. At the end of the procession
+came the two little girls.</p>
+
+<p>They had not seen the dining-room before. It
+was big enough for a banquet hall, and the table
+without being extended would have seated a dozen.
+There was an open fireplace on either side of this
+room. The acetylene lamps gave plenty of light.
+There were favors at each plate. There were
+even flowers on the table. Aside from the
+unplastered walls and raftered ceiling, one might have
+thought this dinner served in Mr. Howbridge’s
+own home.</p>
+
+<p>They all (the older ones at least) began to realize
+how great a cross it would have been for the
+lawyer to take into his home in Milton two harum-scarum
+children like the Birdsall twins. If all
+tales about them were true, they were what Neale
+O’Neil called “terrors.”</p>
+
+<p>Such children would surely break every rule of
+the lawyer’s well-ordered existence. And bachelors
+of Mr. Howbridge’s age do not take kindly
+to changes.</p>
+
+<p>“Think of bringing the refinements of his own
+establishment away up here into the woods for a
+three weeks’ vacation!” gasped Cecile afterwards
+to Ruth.</p>
+
+<p>To-night at dinner every rule of a well-furnished
+and well-governed household was followed. Hedden
+and his assistant served. The food was deliciously
+cooked and the sauce of a good appetite
+aided all to enjoy the meal.</p>
+
+<p>And the fun and laughter! Mr. Howbridge and
+Mrs. MacCall enjoyed the jokes and chatter as
+much as the younger people themselves. Dot’s
+discovery that this was not at all like the lodge
+room on Meadow Street delighted everybody.</p>
+
+<p>“If you think that red deer ever held lodge
+meetings in this house, you are much mistaken,
+honey,” Agnes told the smallest Corner House
+girl.</p>
+
+<p>Tom Jonah was allowed to come in and “sit up”
+at table. The old dog was so well trained that his
+table manners (and this was Ruth’s declaration)
+were far superior to those of Sammy Pinkney.
+But Sammy was on his best behavior this evening.
+The grandeur of the table service quite overpowered
+him.</p>
+
+<p>When they all filed back into the hall, which was
+really the living-room and reception hall combined,
+Tom Jonah went with them and curled down on a
+warm spot on the hearth. One of the men staggered
+in with a great armful of chunks for the
+evening fire. Hedden found a popper and popcorn.
+There was a basket of shiny apples, and
+even a jug of sweet cider appeared, to be set down
+near the fire to take the chill off it.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, this,” said Mr. Howbridge, sitting in
+a great chair with his slippered feet outstretched
+toward the fire, “is what I call country comfort.”</p>
+
+<p>“Whist, man!” exclaimed Mrs. MacCall. “’Tis
+plain to be seen you ken little about country comforts,
+or discomforts either. You were born in
+the city, Mr. Howbridge, and you have lived in
+the city most of your days. ’Tis little you know
+what it means to live away from towns and from
+luxuries.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why,” laughed the lawyer, “I always go away
+for a vacation in the summer, and I usually choose
+some rustic neighborhood.”</p>
+
+<p>“Aye. Where they have piped water in the
+house, and electricity, an’ hair mattresses. Aye.
+I know your kind of ‘country,’ too, Mr. Howbridge.
+But when I was a child at home we lived
+in the real country—only two farms in the vale
+and the shepherds’ cots. My feyther was a shepherd,
+you know.”</p>
+
+<p>“You must be some relation of ours, then, Mrs.
+MacCall,” Luke said, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, aye. By Adam,” said the housekeeper
+coolly. “I’ve nae doot we sprang from the same
+stock the Bible speaks of.”</p>
+
+<p>“Now will you be good?” cried Cecile, shaking
+a finger at her brother. “Go on, Mrs. MacCall.
+Tell us about your Highland home.”</p>
+
+<p>“Hech! There’s very little to tell,” said the
+housekeeper, shaking her head, “save that ’twas
+a very lonely vale we lived in, and forbye in winter.
+Then we’d not see a strange body from end
+to end of the snows. And the snow came early
+and went late.</p>
+
+<p>“If we had not a grand oat bin and a cow in the
+stable we bairns would oft go hungry. Why, our
+mother would sometimes keep us abed in stormy
+weather to save turf. A fire like yon,” she added,
+nodding toward the blazing pile in the chimney,
+“would have been counted a sin even in a laird’s
+house.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, Mrs. MacCall,” said the lawyer, “we’re
+all lairds over here.”</p>
+
+<p>“Aye, that can pay the price can have the luxuries.
+’Tis so. But luxuries we knew naught
+about where I was born and bred.”</p>
+
+<p>“I suppose the people right around us here—the
+residents of this neighborhood—have few luxuries,”
+Ruth said thoughtfully.</p>
+
+<p>“There aren’t many neighbors, I guess,” said
+Neale, laughing.</p>
+
+<p>“But those people living in that fishing village—and
+even at Coxford—never saw a tenth of the
+things which we consider necessary at home,”
+Ruth pursued.</p>
+
+<p>“Suppose!” exclaimed Cecile eagerly. “Just
+suppose we were snowed in up here and could not
+get out for weeks, and nobody could get to us. I
+guess we would have to learn to go without luxuries!
+Maybe without food.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, don’t suggest such a thing,” begged
+Agnes. “And this cold air gives one such an
+appetite!”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t mention a shortage of food,” put in
+Neale, chuckling, “or Aggie will be getting up in
+the night and coming down to rob the pantry.”</p>
+
+<p>There might have been a squabble right then and
+there had not Hedden appeared, and, in his grave
+way, announced:</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. M’Graw has arrived, sir. Shall I bring
+him in here?”</p>
+
+<p>“Ah!” exclaimed the lawyer, waking up from
+a brown study. “Ike M’Graw? I understood
+from Birdsall that he is a character. Has he had
+supper, Hedden?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir. I knew that you would wish him
+served. He has been eating in the servants’ dining-room,
+sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“Send him in,” the lawyer said. “Now, young
+folks, here is the man who can tell us more about
+Red Deer Lodge and the country hereabout, and
+all that goes on in it, than anybody else. Here—”</p>
+
+<p>The door opened again. Hedden announced
+gravely:</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Ike M’Graw, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>There strode over the threshold one of the tallest
+men the young people, at least, had ever seen.
+And he was so lean that his height seemed more
+than it really was.</p>
+
+<p>“Why,” gasped Neale to Agnes, “he’s so thin
+he doesn’t cast a shadow, I bet!”</p>
+
+<p>“Sh!” advised the girl warningly.</p>
+
+<p>They were all vastly interested in the appearance
+of Mr. Ike M’Graw.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink13'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XIII—THE TIMBER CRUISER</a></h2>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge got up from his chair and advanced
+to meet the backwoodsman with hospitable
+hand. The roughly dressed, bewhiskered
+forester did not impress the young folks at first
+as being different from the men who had driven
+the sledges to the camp or those who had brought
+the party up Long Lake in the ice-boats.</p>
+
+<p>Ike M’Graw had an enormous moustache (“like
+that of a walrus,” Cecile whispered), but his iron-gray
+beard was cropped close. His face was long
+and solemn of expression, but his gray eyes, surrounded
+by innumerable wrinkles, had a humorous
+cast, and were as bright as the eyes of a much
+younger person.</p>
+
+<p>He seized Mr. Howbridge’s hand and pumped it
+warmly. His grip was strong, and Mr. Howbridge
+winced, but he continued to smile upon the
+old man.</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Birdsall told me that if I wanted to know
+anything up here, or wanted anything done, to
+look to you, Mr. M’Graw,” said the lawyer, as
+their hands fell apart.</p>
+
+<p>“I bet he didn’t say it jest that way, Mr. Howbridge,”
+chuckled the man. “No. I reckon he
+jest called me ‘Ike.’ Now, didn’t he? And ‘Old
+Ike,’ at that!”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge laughed. “Well, he did speak
+of you in that way, yes,” he admitted.</p>
+
+<p>“I reckoned so,” M’Graw said. “Yep, I’m
+‘Old Ike’ to my friends, and what my enemies
+call me don’t matter at all—not at all.”</p>
+
+<p>“I fancy you don’t make many enemies up here
+in the woods, M’Graw,” said Mr. Howbridge, waving
+the visitor to a comfortable seat before the
+fire.</p>
+
+<p>“Nor friends, nuther,” chuckled the man.
+“No, sir, there ain’t sech a slather of folks up
+here to mix in with, by any count.”</p>
+
+<p>Before the woodsman took his seat the lawyer
+introduced him to Mrs. MacCall and to Ruth, individually,
+and to the rest of the group in general.</p>
+
+<p>“Hi gorry!” exclaimed Ike M’Graw, “you’ve
+got a right big fam’ly, haven’t you? You won’t
+be lonesome up here—no, you won’t be lonesome.”</p>
+
+<p>“And that is what I should think you would
+be,” Mr. Howbridge said. “Lonesome. If you
+get snowed in you don’t see anybody for weeks,
+I suppose?”</p>
+
+<p>“Better say ‘months,’ Mister,” declared
+M’Graw. “I’ve been snowed into my cabin back
+yonder in the valley from the day before Christmas
+till come St. Patrick’s Day. That’s right.”</p>
+
+<p>“I understood you lived near the Lodge, here,
+Ike?” said the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I do in winter, since Mr. Birdsall asked
+me to,” the man said. “But sometimes—’specially
+when there was visitors up here—the population
+of this here ridge got too thick for Old
+Ike. Then I’d hike out for my old cabin in the
+valley.”</p>
+
+<p>Quickly Mr. Howbridge put in a query that had
+formed in his mind early in the evening:</p>
+
+<p>“Have you been troubled with visitors up here
+this winter?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, sir! It’s been right quiet here, you might
+say.”</p>
+
+<p>“Nobody here at all until my party came yesterday?”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, not many. Some timbermen went
+through for Neven. His company’s got a camp
+over beyond the Birdsall line. Yes, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“Strangers have not been here, then?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, no. Not to my knowledge,” said
+M’Graw, with a keener look at the lawyer. “You
+wasn’t meanin’ nothin’ special, was you? I’ve
+been away over to Ebettsville for a week. Nothin’
+stirring here before I went.”</p>
+
+<p>The conversation had become general again
+among the main party. Mr. Howbridge drew
+his chair nearer to the old man’s ear.</p>
+
+<p>“Listen,” he said. “When my men came up
+yesterday and opened the house with the key I
+had given them, they found somebody had been
+in here not many hours before they arrived.”</p>
+
+<p>“How’d they know?”</p>
+
+<p>“The fire had scarcely died out in one of the
+grates upstairs.”</p>
+
+<p>“Hum! Fire, eh? And I hadn’t been inside
+this Lodge since b’fore Thanksgiving. Kinder
+funny, heh?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes.”</p>
+
+<p>“Anything stole?”</p>
+
+<p>“Not a thing touched as far as we know. No
+other traces but the embers in that grate—”</p>
+
+<p>“Hold on, Mister!” exclaimed M’Graw, but in
+a low voice. “What grate are you referrin’ to?
+Which room was this fire in?”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Howbridge told him. The old man’s face
+was curious to look upon. His brows drew down
+into a frown. His sharp eyes lost their humorous
+cast. Of a sudden he was very serious indeed.</p>
+
+<p>“That thar room,” he said slowly, and at
+length, “was Miz’ Birdsall’s.”</p>
+
+<p>“So I believed from the way it was furnished
+and from what Frank had told me of the house.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, Mister. That was her room. She
+thought a heap of sittin’ in that room; ’specially
+in stormy weather. And the little shavers used
+to play there with her, too.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes?”</p>
+
+<p>“Them little shavers thought a sight of their
+mom,” pursued M’Graw.</p>
+
+<p>“I gathered as much from what Frank told
+me,” Mr. Howbridge said seriously.</p>
+
+<p>“By the way, Mr. Howbridge,” said M’Graw
+in a different tone, “where are the little shavers?”</p>
+
+<p>“You mean the twins, of course? Ralph and
+Rowena?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>The guardian of the Birdsall twins rather hesitatingly
+told the old man just why he had not
+brought Ralph and Rowena to Red Deer Lodge
+at this time.</p>
+
+<p>“Ran away? Now listen to that!” murmured
+the old man. “That don’t sound right. Wasn’t
+they with folks able to take keer of ’em?”</p>
+
+<p>“I thought they were,” said Mr. Howbridge.
+“Rodgers, the butler, and his wife.”</p>
+
+<p>“Whoof!” exclaimed the backwoodsman, expelling
+his breath in a great snort of disgust.
+“That butler! Wal, what for a man wants to
+buttle for, I don’t know. I never could make it
+out that it was a real man’s job, anyway. And
+that Rodgers was one useless critter. I don’t
+blame them little shavers for runnin’ away from
+Rodgers an’ that sour-apple wife of his. I know
+’em both.”</p>
+
+<p>“If that is the case,” said the lawyer sadly, “I
+wish I had known them as well as you appear to.
+Then I should have made other provision for the
+twins right at the start.”</p>
+
+<p>“But shucks!” said M’Graw, suddenly grinning.
+“Them two little shavers will turn up all
+right. Ralph and Roweny are right smart kids.”</p>
+
+<p>“That may be. But we don’t know where they
+have gone to. Of course, Ike, they couldn’t have
+got up here to Red Deer Lodge, could they?”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t know ’bout that,” said the old man.
+“I reckon they could have got here if they’d
+wanted to. But I know well ’nough they didn’t—not
+before I went away to Ebettsville a week
+ago.”</p>
+
+<p>“Of course not! Somebody would have seen
+them at Coxford. And then, if they had come
+here, where are they now?”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s right, Mister,” agreed Ike M’Graw.
+“But—but who started that fire in the grate?”</p>
+
+<p>“If it had been the children wouldn’t they have
+been found here?”</p>
+
+<p>“Mebbe. Tell you the truth”—and the old
+man’s weather-beaten face reddened a little.
+“Well, to tell you the truth, when you spoke of
+the fire in the grate, I was some took aback. Miz’
+Birdsall bein’ killed here. And she likin’ that
+room so. And she finally dyin’ in it—well, I don’t
+know—”</p>
+
+<p>“Ike! you are superstitious, I do believe,” said
+the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“Mebbe. But that never killed nobody,” said
+the man. “And funny things do happen. Howsomever—Say!”
+he exclaimed suddenly, “how’d
+these folks that made the fire get into the house
+and out again?”</p>
+
+<p>“Hedden, my man, says he found nothing
+broken or burst open. It must have been by the
+use of a key. And the only key I knew of up
+here was yours, Ike.”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s right,” said the backwoodsman, nodding.
+“Mine’s the only key up here.”</p>
+
+<p>“But the intruders couldn’t have used that.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, they could, too! I didn’t take it with me
+when I went away from here.”</p>
+
+<p>“Who would know where it was?”</p>
+
+<p>“Anybody might have seen it that looked into
+my shack,” admitted the old man. “I ain’t in
+the habit of hidin’ things. We don’t have burglars
+up here, Mister. That key, and others, hung
+right on a nail beside my chimley-place. Yes,
+sir!”</p>
+
+<p>“Then any person passing by could have found
+the key and entered the Lodge?” asked Mr. Howbridge.</p>
+
+<p>“Only we don’t have many folks passin’ by,”
+returned Ike thoughtfully.</p>
+
+<p>“I can’t understand it.”</p>
+
+<p>“It is a puzzle,” admitted M’Graw. “Hi
+gorry! I ain’t been to my shack yet since comin’
+back from Ebettsville. Mebbe the key ain’t thar
+no more.”</p>
+
+<p>“To what door was it?” asked the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“This here,” replied M’Graw, jerking a thumb
+toward the main entrance. “Padlock on the outside
+of the door. All the other doors was barred
+on the inside. Oh, she was locked up hard and
+fast!”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t understand it,” said the lawyer.
+“You look when you go home and see if the key
+is hanging where you left it.”</p>
+
+<p>“Hi gorry! I will,” promised the backwoodsman.
+“I’d better bring the key over here tomorrow,
+anyway. And I reckon you want them
+figgers on the timber Neven wants to cut?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. Of course, Ike, you have made no mistake
+in cruising the timberland?”</p>
+
+<p>“I never make mistakes, Mister,” said the old
+man. “That wouldn’t do in the woods. The man
+that’s brought up, as I was, with wildcats an’
+bears an’ sech, can’t afford to make mistakes.
+This was a lots wilder country when I was a boy
+from what ’tis now.”</p>
+
+<p>“I find that Neven’s figures are very different
+from yours.”</p>
+
+<p>“Likely. And I reckon they’re in his favor,
+ain’t they?” and M’Graw chuckled. “Ye-as? I
+thought so. Well, you take it from me, Mister:
+I’m working for Birdsall’s youngsters, not for
+Neven.”</p>
+
+<p>“I believe that to be a fact,” the lawyer agreed
+warmly. “I have already told Neven that there
+are other companies that will make a contract
+with us if he doesn’t care to accept your report.”</p>
+
+<p>“I b’lieve I know this Birdsall strip a leetle better’n
+any other feller in these parts. I’ve lived
+on it twenty year, and knowed it well before that
+time. I’ve seen some o’ this timber grow.
+Reckon I ain’t fooled myself none.”</p>
+
+<p>After that Mr. Howbridge drew the old
+into the general conversation. Ike approved
+vastly of the young people, it was evident. Agnes
+and the smaller children were popping corn.
+There were apples roasting on the hearth. The
+cider was handed about in glasses which one of
+the servants brought.</p>
+
+<p>“We shall look to you for help in amusing these
+young people, Ike,” Mr. Howbridge said. “Is it
+going to snow enough tonight to keep them indoors
+tomorrow?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, no,” the old woodsman assured them.
+“It’s snowing some, but not much yet awhile.
+This here storm that’s comin’ has got to gather
+fust. We’ll get a heavy fall, I don’t doubt, in the
+end; but not yet. Like enough, ’twill be purty
+fair tomorrow.”</p>
+
+<p>Reassured by this prophecy, the little folks soon
+after went to bed. Nor were the older members
+of the party long behind them. They had had a
+long and wearying day, and the beds beckoned
+them.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink14'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XIV—BY THE LIGHT OF THE MOON</a></h2>
+
+<p>Ike M’Graw, the timber cruiser, was an excellent
+weather prophet; and this was proved to be
+a fact before all of those at Red Deer Lodge had
+gone to bed on this first night.</p>
+
+<p>Neale O’Neil chanced to raise the shade of one
+of the windows in the boys’ room before undressing,
+and exclaimed to Luke:</p>
+
+<p>“Hey! who said it snowed? Look at that moon
+up there!”</p>
+
+<p>Luke Shepard joined him and looked out, too,
+at the rather misty orb of night that peered
+through the breaking clouds. But little snow had
+fallen during the evening.</p>
+
+<p>“Going to be a good day, just as that old codger
+said it would,” agreed Luke. “My, how white
+everything is—really, silver! And a lonely place,
+isn’t it?”</p>
+
+<p>“You said it,” agreed Neale. He was feeling
+in his pockets, and suddenly added: “Crackey!
+I’ve lost my knife.”</p>
+
+<p>“You had it down there peeling apples for the
+girls,” said Luke, who was beginning to undress.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy was already in bed and sound asleep.
+Neale started for the door.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t want to lose that knife,” he said. “I
+am going to run down and get it.”</p>
+
+<p>The serving people had gone to bed, but there
+were dim lights on the gallery and one below in
+the big hall. Neale ran lightly down the carpeted
+stairs on his side of the house. The light was
+so dim that he fumbled around a good while hunting
+for the missing knife.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly something clattered about his ears—some
+missiles that came from above, but were not
+much heavier than snowflakes, it would seem.
+Neale jumped, and then stared around.</p>
+
+<p>He could not see a thing moving or hear anything.
+Where the white objects had come from
+he could not understand. Finally he found one
+that had rolled on the floor.</p>
+
+<p>“Popcorn! Say! it’s not snowing popcorn
+in here—not by any natural means,” the boy told
+himself, immediately suspicious.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly he spied his knife, and he pocketed
+that. As he did so there came another baptism
+of popcorn. He dropped down below the edge of
+a table which stood in the middle of the room under
+the chandelier. All the light came from above,
+and there was not much of that; so it was dark
+under the table.</p>
+
+<p>He heard a faint giggle. “Ah-ha!” thought
+Neale. “I smell a mouse! That is a girl’s giggle.”</p>
+
+<p>He saw that the way to the foot of the stairs
+that were nearest the girls’ rooms, was quite dark.
+He ran out from under the table, but softly and on
+his hands and knees, and reached the stairway
+without making a sound.</p>
+
+<p>The popcorn rattled again upon the table top,
+and once more he heard the giggle. He wormed
+his way up the stairs in the shadow and reached
+the gallery. Here a jet of gas from the side wall
+gave some light. He saw the robed figure hanging
+over the bannister and in the act of throwing
+another handful of popcorn at the spot where the
+boy was supposed to be crouching.</p>
+
+<p>Neale O’Neil crept forward from the top of the
+stairs, still on his hands and knees. He was likewise
+in the shadow, although he could see the figure
+ahead of him plainly.</p>
+
+<p>“Meow!” crooned the boy, imitating a cat with
+remarkable ingenuity. “Meow!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, mercy!” hissed a startled voice.</p>
+
+<p>“Ma-ro-o-ow!” urged Neale O’Neil, repeating
+his feline success.</p>
+
+<p>“Mercy!” ejaculated the whisperer. “That’s
+a strange cat.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ma-row-ro-o-ow!” continued Neale, with a lingering
+wail.</p>
+
+<p>“Here, kitty! kitty! kitty!” murmured the girl
+crouching by the bannister. “Oh, where are you?
+Poor kitty!”</p>
+
+<p>Immediately Neale changed his tone and produced
+a growl that not only sounded savage but
+seemed so near that the startled girl jumped up
+with a cry:</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh! Neale!”</p>
+
+<p>“Ma-row-ro-o-ow! Ssst!” continued what purported
+to be a cat, and one that was very much annoyed.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! <i>Oh!</i> OH!” shrieked Agnes, springing
+up and leaning over the railing. “Neale! Come
+quick!”</p>
+
+<p>And there Neale was right beside her! He appeared
+so suddenly that she would have shrieked
+again, and perhaps brought half the household
+to the spot, had not the boy grabbed her quickly
+and placed a hand over her mouth, stifling the cry
+about to burst forth.</p>
+
+<p>“Hush!” he commanded. “Want to get Mrs.
+Mac or Mr. Howbridge out here to see what is the
+matter?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Neale!” sputtered Agnes. “I thought
+you were a cat.”</p>
+
+<p>“And I thought you were a hailstorm of popcorn.”</p>
+
+<p>“You horrid boy! To scare me so!”</p>
+
+<p>“You horrid girl! To shower me with popcorn!”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t care—”</p>
+
+<p>“Neither do I.”</p>
+
+<p>Agnes began to giggle. “What were you doing
+down there?” she asked.</p>
+
+<p>“I was looking for my pocketknife. Wouldn’t
+lose it for a farm Down East with a pig on it!”
+declared the boy. “What are you doing out
+here?”</p>
+
+<p>“I went to Mrs. Mac’s room to give her her
+nightcap. It was in my bag. Oh, Neale! do you
+suppose it will be clear by morning, as that funny
+old man says?”</p>
+
+<p>“It’s clear now.”</p>
+
+<p>“You don’t mean it?”</p>
+
+<p>“Come along here to the window and look for
+yourself,” the boy said, and led her toward the
+front of the house along the gallery.</p>
+
+<p>There was a broad and deep-silled window over
+the front door of the Lodge. Neale drew back the
+hangings. They could see out into the night which
+was now all black and silver.</p>
+
+<p>The forest that edged the clearing in which
+stood the Lodge was as black as ever an evergreen
+forest could be. The tops of the trees were
+silvered by the moonbeams, but the shadows at
+the foot of the trees were like ink.</p>
+
+<p>In the open the new-fallen snow glittered as
+though the moonlight fell on precious stones. It
+was so beautiful a scene that for a moment Agnes
+could only grip Neale O’Neil’s arm and utter an
+ecstatic sigh.</p>
+
+<p>“Scrumptious, isn’t it?” said the boy, understanding
+her mood.</p>
+
+<p>“Lovely!” sighed Agnes. “Ruth and Cecile
+ought to see this.”</p>
+
+<p>“Hold on!” warned the boy. “Get them out
+here and we’ll both be sent to bed in a hurry.
+Ruth’s got her bossing clothes on—has had ’em
+on ever since we left Milton.”</p>
+
+<p>“Te-he!” giggled Agnes suddenly. “She feels
+her responsibility.”</p>
+
+<p>“Guess she does,” chuckled Neale. “But
+there’s no need to add to her troubles. Believe
+me! the less I am bossed around by her the better
+I like it.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Neale,” said Agnes, “she only does it for
+your good.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t you fret,” returned the boy, with a
+sniff. “I can get along without Ruth or anybody
+else worrying about whether I’m good, or
+not. Believe me!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” squealed Agnes suddenly. “What’s
+that?”</p>
+
+<p>“Huh! Seen a rat? Scared to death?”
+scoffed Neale O’Neil.</p>
+
+<p>“Look at that thing out there! It’s no rat,”
+declared the girl eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>Neale then looked in the direction she pointed.
+Not twenty yards from the house, and sitting on
+its haunches in the snow, was an object that at
+first Neale thought was a dog. The shadow it
+cast upon the moon-lit snow showed pointed ears,
+however, and a bushy tail.</p>
+
+<p>“Crackey, Aggie!” gasped Neale, “that’s a
+fox.”</p>
+
+<p>“A fox? Right here near the house? Just
+like that?” gasped the girl. “Why—why, he
+must be wild!”</p>
+
+<p>“Crackey!” returned Neale, smothering his
+laughter, “you didn’t suppose he was tame, did
+you?”</p>
+
+<p>“But—but,” stammered the girl, “if a wild fox
+comes so near the house, one of those dreadful
+lynxes may come—or a bear. I never! Why, we
+might be besieged by wolves and bears and wildcats.
+Did you ever?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, I never was,” scoffed Neale. “Not yet.
+But, really, I am willing to be. I’ll try anything—once.”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess you wouldn’t be so smart, young man,
+if the animals really did come here and serenade
+us. Why—”</p>
+
+<p>“Listen! That fellow is serenading us now,”
+declared Neale, much amused.</p>
+
+<p>The sharp, shrill yap of the fox reached their
+ears. Then, from the rear of the house where
+Tom Jonah was confined in the back kitchen, the
+roar of the old dog’s bark answered the fox’s yapping.</p>
+
+<p>And then from somewhere—was it from above
+and inside the house, or outside and in the black
+woods?—there sounded a sharp explosion. Agnes
+flashed a questioning glance at Neale; but the boy
+pointed, crying:</p>
+
+<p>“Quick! Look! The fox!”</p>
+
+<p>The little animal with the bushy tail that had
+raised its pointed nose to yap mournfully at the
+moon, had suddenly sprung straight up into the
+air. It cleared the snow at least four feet. One
+convulsive wriggle it gave with its whole body,
+and fell back, a black heap, on the snow.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Neale! what happened to it?” gasped
+Agnes, amazed.</p>
+
+<p>“Shot,” said the youth, a curious note in his
+voice.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, who shot it?”</p>
+
+<p>“Ask me an easier one.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why—what—I think that was sort of cruel,
+after all,” sighed the girl. “He wasn’t really doing
+any harm.”</p>
+
+<p>“I thought you were afraid he might eat us all
+up,” said Neale, dropping the curtain which he
+had been holding back, and turning away from
+the window.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh—but—I am serious now,” she said.
+“Who do you suppose shot him?”</p>
+
+<p>“I could not say.”</p>
+
+<p>“That old woodsman, perhaps? There is none
+of our party out there with a gun, of course. Oh,
+dear! I hope I don’t dream of it. I don’t like
+to see things killed.”</p>
+
+<p>But the thought of dreaming about seeing the
+fox shot did not trouble Neale O’Neil when he
+parted with Agnes and went back to his room.
+Nor was it anything about the death of the creature
+that absorbed his attention.</p>
+
+<p>It was who the huntsman was and from where
+the shot was fired that puzzled Neale O ’Neil. Had
+the shot been made from outside or inside the
+house?</p>
+
+<p>For it seemed to the boy that the explosion had
+been above their heads; and he chanced to know
+that none of the party from Milton—not even the
+servants—were quartered on the third floor of Red
+Deer Lodge.</p>
+
+<p>Who, then, could be up there shooting out of one
+of the small windows at the yapping fox? He
+said nothing about this to Agnes; but he determined
+to make inquiry regarding it the first thing
+in the morning.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink15'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XV—A VARIETY OF HAPPENINGS</a></h2>
+
+<p>They were near the shortest day of the year
+and the sun rose very late indeed; so nobody at
+Red Deer Lodge got up early, unless it was the
+kitchen man who had to light the fires and bring
+in much wood. He tramped paths through the
+new-fallen snow to the outbuildings before sunrise.
+By the time Neale O’Neil, his head filled with the
+puzzling thoughts of the night before, reached the
+rear premises, the yard of the Lodge was marked
+and re-marked with footsteps.</p>
+
+<p>He sought Hedden, however, having seen that
+the snow in front of the Lodge showed no footprint.
+The fox lay just where it had been shot.</p>
+
+<p>“Does any of our party sleep in the garret,
+Hedden?” Neale asked the butler.</p>
+
+<p>“No, young man. We all have rooms at the
+back of the house.”</p>
+
+<p>The boy told the man about the shooting of the
+fox. “Of course, one of the men was not out with
+a small rifle, and plugged old Reynard when he
+was howling at the moon, was he?”</p>
+
+<p>“No,” replied the butler. “Neither John nor
+Lawrence knows how to use a gun, I’m sure. Perhaps
+it was that tall man, Ike M’Graw.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, seems to me he ought to have come and
+got the pelt,” said Neale, ruminatingly. “It’s
+worth something all right, when furs are so high.
+Say, Hedden, how do you get upstairs into the
+garret?”</p>
+
+<p>Hedden told him, presuming that it was merely
+a boy’s curiosity that caused him to ask. But
+Neale had a deeper reason than that for wishing
+to find the way upstairs.</p>
+
+<p>He could not understand from what angle the
+fox had been shot while he and Agnes were looking
+out of the window, if the hunter had been in
+the wood. There had been no flash or sign of
+smoke from the edge of the forest, and Neale’s
+vision swept the line of black shadow for hundreds
+of yards at the moment of the report.</p>
+
+<p>“Smokeless powder is all right,” muttered the
+boy. “But they can’t overcome the flash of the
+exploding shell in the dark. No, sir! That
+marksman was not in the wood. And the report
+sounded right over our heads!”</p>
+
+<p>He said nothing more to Hedden, but found
+the upper stairs at the rear of the house. At the
+top was a heavy door, but it was not locked. He
+thrust it open rather gingerly, and looked into the
+great, raftered loft.</p>
+
+<p>The sun was above the treetops now and shone
+redly into the front windows. There was light
+enough for him to see that as far as human occupants
+went, the garret of the Lodge was empty.</p>
+
+<p>There was not much up here, anyway. Several
+boxes, some lumber, and a heap of rubbish in one
+corner.</p>
+
+<p>Neale O’Neil stepped into the place and walked
+to the front of the building. The windows were
+square and swung inward on hinges. He knew
+that this row of front windows was directly over
+that at which he and Agnes stood looking out
+upon the moon-lit lawn at bedtime.</p>
+
+<p>The windows were all fastened with buttons.
+As far as he could see none gave evidence—at least
+on the inside—of having been recently opened.
+Neale shivered in the chill, dead air of the loft.</p>
+
+<p>If the marksman that had shot the fox was up
+here, from which window did he shoot? Neale
+could not find any mark along the window sill or
+on the floor.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly the boy began opening the windows,
+one after the other. Some of them stuck, but he
+persisted until each one swung open. Outside
+the snow that had fallen the evening before lay
+in a fluffy layer on the window sill.</p>
+
+<p>At the third window he halted. In this layer of
+light snow was a mark. Neale uttered a satisfied
+exclamation.</p>
+
+<p>It was the matrix of a round tube—the barrel
+of the gun that had fired the shot which had finished
+Reynard, the fox!</p>
+
+<p>“Can’t be anything else,” thought the boy.
+“He knelt right here and rested his gun across the
+sill. Yes! it points downward—pressed heavier
+at the outer end than near the window. Yes!”</p>
+
+<p>The boy got down and squinted along the mark
+in the snow. His keen eye easily brought the
+huddled, sandy object on the snow down below into
+range.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, what do you know about that?” Neale
+O’Neil asked aloud. “Who was up here with a
+gun last night and popped over that fox? I wonder
+if I ought to tell Mr. Howbridge.”</p>
+
+<p>Had he done so the lawyer would quickly have
+pieced together what Hedden had told him about
+the live embers in the grate and Neale’s discovery.
+Whether he would have arrived at a correct conclusion
+in the matter, was another thing.</p>
+
+<p>However that might be, Neale O’Neil was sure
+that somebody had access to the garret and had
+shot the fox therefrom. After the rear premises
+of the Lodge had been tracked up so before daylight,
+half a dozen people might have left the
+house by the rear door without their footprints
+being seen. If the marksman had no business in
+the Lodge he could easily have got away.</p>
+
+<p>Puzzling over these thoughts, Neale descended
+to find most of the party before the fire in the
+living-room, waiting for breakfast. Agnes was
+eagerly telling of the fox she had seen shot at bedtime.</p>
+
+<p>Neale added no details to her story, save that
+the fox still lay on the snow outside.</p>
+
+<p>“Whoever hit him didn’t care for the pelt,”
+said the boy. “Now that it is frozen, it will be
+hard to skin. A fox hide is worth something.
+I’m going to thaw out the body and try to save
+the skin—for Aggie, of course.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, my!” cried the beauty, “won’t it be fine
+to have a collar or a muff made out of a fox that
+I saw shot with my own eyes?”</p>
+
+<p>“Odd about that,” said Mr. Howbridge thoughtfully.
+“I wonder who could have been so near
+the Lodge last evening. And then, to have left
+the fox there!”</p>
+
+<p>The breakfast call interrupted him. Neale said
+nothing further about it. After the meal, however,
+the young people all got into their warm
+wraps and overshoes and went out of doors.</p>
+
+<p>Tom Jonah was turned loose, and he almost at
+once dashed around the house to the spot where
+the body of the fox lay. The children gathered
+around the fuzzy animal in great excitement.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, it looks like Mrs. Allen’s spitz dog—only
+this is reddish and Sambo, the spitz, is white,”
+Tess said. “The poor—little—thing!”</p>
+
+<p>“This is no ‘expectorates’ dog,” chuckled Neale,
+grabbing the creature by the tail. “‘Expectorates’
+is a much better word than ‘spits,’ Tess.
+Now, I am going to take this fellow and hang him
+up in the back kitchen where he will thaw out.
+No, Tom Jonah! you are not going to worry him.”</p>
+
+<p>“What lovely long fur!” murmured Agnes.
+“Do you suppose you can really cure the skin for
+me, Neale?” she demanded.</p>
+
+<p>“What’s the matter with the skin?” demanded
+Sammy, in wonder. “Is it sick?”</p>
+
+<p>“Good gracious!” exclaimed Agnes. “These
+children have to be explained to every minute. I
+hope that fox skin has no disease, Sammy.”</p>
+
+<p>Luke and Ruth and Cecile had gone for a tramp
+through the wood. The little folks set to work
+building a snow man which was to be of wondrous
+proportions when completed. Naturally Neale
+and Agnes kept together.</p>
+
+<p>Agnes had been wandering along the edge of
+the wood in front of the house while Neale carried
+the fox indoors. Tom Jonah came back with Neale
+and began snuffing about the spot where the fox
+had laid.</p>
+
+<p>“See here, Neale O’Neil,” cried Agnes, “I can’t
+find anybody’s footprints over here. Where do
+you suppose that man shot the fox from?”</p>
+
+<p>“Humph!” grunted Neale noncommittally.</p>
+
+<p>“But here’s just the cunningest hoofprints!
+See them!” cried Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>The boy joined her. Two rows of marks made
+by split-hoofed animals ran along the edge of the
+wood.</p>
+
+<p>“Crackey!” ejaculated the boy. “Those are
+deer.”</p>
+
+<p>“You don’t mean it?”</p>
+
+<p>“Must be. Red deer, I bet. And right close
+to the Lodge! How tame these creatures are.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, deer won’t hurt us,” said Agnes, decidedly.
+“Let’s see where they went to.”</p>
+
+<p>Neale was nothing loath. One direction was as
+good as another. He wanted much to talk to
+somebody about the discovery he had made in the
+loft of the Lodge; but he did not wish to frighten
+Agnes, so he did not broach the subject.</p>
+
+<p>The two rows of hoof marks went on, side by
+side, along the edge of the clearing. They followed
+them to the very end of the opening which
+had been cleared about Red Deer Lodge—the
+northern end.</p>
+
+<p>Here began a narrow path into the woods. The
+spoor of the two animals led into this path, and
+the boy and girl tramped along after them.</p>
+
+<p>“I guess nothing frightened them,” said Neale,
+“for they appear to be trotting right along at an
+easy gait. They must have passed this way in
+the night. And that’s kind of funny, too.”</p>
+
+<p>“What is funny?” asked Agnes.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, deer—especially two, alone—ought to
+have been hiding in some clump of brush during
+the night. They don’t go wandering around much
+unless they are hungry. And there is plenty of
+brush fodder for them to eat along the edge of
+the swamps, that is sure.”</p>
+
+<p>“Are you sure they are deer?” asked Agnes.
+“They couldn’t be anything else, could they?”</p>
+
+<p>“I reckon not,” laughed Neale. “I say! who
+lives here?”</p>
+
+<p>They caught a glimpse of an opening in the forest
+ahead. Then a cabin appeared, from the chimney
+of which a curl of blue smoke rose into the
+air. There were several smaller buildings in the
+clearing, too.</p>
+
+<p>“Guess we have struck that old timber cruiser’s
+place,” Neale said, answering his own question.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Mr. Ike M’Graw!” cried Agnes. “Now
+we can ask him if he shot the fox last night.”</p>
+
+<p>“But where did these deer go?” exclaimed
+Neale, stopping on the edge of the little clearing
+and staring all around.</p>
+
+<p>For here the tracks they had followed seemed
+to cross and criss-cross all about the clearing.
+That wild deer should frolic so about an occupied
+house was indeed puzzling. He saw, too, that
+there were human footprints over-running the
+marks of the split hoofs.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly from around the corner of the cabin
+appeared the long, slablike figure of the woodsman.
+He saw them almost immediately.</p>
+
+<p>“Hullo, there!” he cried. “Ain’t you out
+early? I wouldn’t have been up near so early
+myself, if it hadn’t been for those confounded
+shoats of mine.”</p>
+
+<p>“What happened to the pigs?” asked Neale,
+smiling.</p>
+
+<p>“They broke out o’ their pen. Always doin’
+that!” returned M’Graw. “Run off through the
+woods somewhere, and then come back and made
+sech a racket around my shanty that I can’t sleep.
+Confound ’em!”</p>
+
+<p>Neale suddenly saw a great light. He seized
+Agnes’ hand and squeezed it in warning. With
+his other hand he pointed to the marks in the
+snow.</p>
+
+<p>“Are those the pigs’ footprints?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. I just got ’em shut up again,” said the
+woodsman. “Come in, won’t you? I guess my
+coffee’s biled sufficient, and I’m about to fry me
+a mess of bacon and johnnycake.”</p>
+
+<p>“What do you know about that?” murmured
+Neale to the giggling Agnes. “We followed those
+pig tracks for deer tracks. Aren’t we great hunters—I
+don’t think!”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink16'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XVI—THE KEY</a></h2>
+
+<p>The interior of Ike M’Graw’s cabin was a place
+of interest to Neale and Agnes. There was not
+much room, but it was neat and clean. There
+were two bunks, one over the other at one end
+of the room. At the other end was the big, open
+fireplace.</p>
+
+<p>There were andirons, a chimney crane for a
+pot, a dutch oven, and a sheet-iron shelf that could
+be pushed over the coals, on which the old man
+baked his johnnycake, or pan-bread.</p>
+
+<p>The coffee pot was already bubbling on this
+shelf and gave off a strong odor of Rio. The
+bacon was sliced, ready for the frying pan. Ike
+wanted to cut more and give his two young visitors
+a second breakfast; but they would not hear
+to that.</p>
+
+<p>“We’ll take a cup of coffee with you,” Agnes
+said brightly. “But I know I could not possibly
+eat another thing. Could you, Neale?”</p>
+
+<p>“Not yet,” agreed the boy. “And anyway,”
+he added, with a smile, “if we are going to have
+a big storm as they say we are, Mr. M’Graw will
+need to conserve his food.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t you fret, son,” said M’Graw; “I’ve got
+enough pork and bacon, flour, meal and coffee, to
+last me clean into spring. I never stint my stomach.
+Likewise, as long as I can pull the trigger
+of Old Betsey there, I shan’t go hungry in these
+here woods. No, sir!”</p>
+
+<p>Neale stepped to the rack in the corner where
+stood the brown-barreled rifle the woodsman called
+“Old Betsey,” as well as a single and a double-barreled
+shotgun.</p>
+
+<p>“Which of these did you use last night, Mr. M’Graw,
+when you shot that fox?” Agnes asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Heh? What fox?”</p>
+
+<p>“Maybe it wasn’t you,” said the Corner House
+girl. “But somebody shot a fox right up there
+in front of the Lodge.”</p>
+
+<p>“When was this?” demanded the old man, looking
+at her curiously.</p>
+
+<p>Neale told him the time. The woodsman shook
+his head slowly.</p>
+
+<p>“I was buried in my blankets by that time,” he
+declared. “Are you sure the fox was shot, young
+feller?”</p>
+
+<p>“I’ve got it hung up to get the frost out so I
+can skin it,” said Neale quietly.</p>
+
+<p>“Shot, eh?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“What sort of a ball killed it?”</p>
+
+<p>“A small bullet. It was no large rifle bullet,”
+said Neale confidently. “I should think it was
+no more than a twenty-two caliber.”</p>
+
+<p>“Pshaw! that’s only a play-toy,” returned the
+old man. “Who’d have a gun like that up here
+in the woods? Guess you’re mistook, young feller.”</p>
+
+<p>“When you come up to the house you take a
+look at the fox,” said Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“I’ll do that. Where’d the feller stand when
+he shot the fox?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why,” put in Agnes, as Neale hesitated, “we
+couldn’t find his footprints at all.”</p>
+
+<p>“Humph!” muttered the old fellow.</p>
+
+<p>He poured out the coffee. The cups were deep,
+thick, and had no handles. He poured his own
+into the deep saucer, blew it noisily, and sipped
+it in great, scalding gulps. Agnes tried not to
+give this operation any attention.</p>
+
+<p>Neale meanwhile was examining several fine
+skins hung upon the log walls. There was a wolf
+skin among them, and a big, black bear robe was
+flung over the lower bunk for warmth.</p>
+
+<p>“I got him,” said the woodsman, “five year ago.
+He was in a berry patch over against the mountain,
+yonder. And he was as fat as butter.”</p>
+
+<p>“And the wolf?” asked Agnes, with considerable
+interest.</p>
+
+<p>“I trapped him. Last winter. He was a tremendous
+big feller,” said M’Graw, heaping a tin
+plate with johnnycake and pouring bacon grease
+over it. “There’s a small pack living up in the
+hills, and I’m likely to get more this winter.
+These heavy snows will no doubt be driving ’em
+down.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Wolves!” gasped the girl.</p>
+
+<p>“They won’t bother you none,” said M’Graw.
+“Don’t go off by yourself, and if any of your
+party takes a long tramp, carry a gun. Like
+enough you’ll get a shot at something; but not
+wolves. They’re too sly.”</p>
+
+<p>The conversation of the old backwoodsman was
+both illuminating and amusing. And his hunting
+trophies were vastly interesting, at least to Neale.</p>
+
+<p>There was a big photograph on the wall of Ike
+and another man standing on either side of a
+fallen moose. The great, spoon-shaped horns of
+the creature were at least six feet across.</p>
+
+<p>“You’ll see that head up over the main mantelpiece
+up to the Lodge,” said M’Graw. “That’s
+Mr. Birdsall. He an’ me shot that moose over the
+line in Canady. But we brought the head home.”</p>
+
+<p>Over his own fireplace was a handsome head—that
+of a stag of the red deer.</p>
+
+<p>“Got him,” Ike vouchsafed between bites,
+“down in the east swamp, ten year ago come
+Christmas. Ain’t been a bigger shot in this part
+of the country, I reckon, ’ceptin’ the ghost deer
+Tom Lawrence shot three winters ago over towards
+Ebettsville.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ghost deer!” exclaimed Neale and Agnes together.</p>
+
+<p>“What does that mean?” added the boy.</p>
+
+<p>“Surely you don’t believe there are spirits of
+deer returned to earth, do you, Mr. M’Graw?”
+asked Agnes, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>M’Graw grinned. “Ain’t no tellin’. Mebbe
+there is. I’m mighty careful what I say about
+ghosts,” he rejoined. “But this here ghost deer,
+now—”</p>
+
+<p>He had finished breakfast and was filling his
+pipe. “Lemme tell you about it,” he said. “I
+will say, though, ’twasn’t no spirit, for I eat some
+of the venison from that ghost deer.</p>
+
+<p>“But for two seasons the critter had had the
+whole of Ebettsville by the ears. The hunters
+couldn’t get a shot, and some folks said ’twas a
+sure-enough ghost.</p>
+
+<p>“But if ’twas a ghost, it was the fust one that
+ever left footprints in the snow. That’s sure,”
+chuckled M’Graw. “I went over there with Old
+Betsey once; but never got a shot at it. Jest the
+same I seen the footprints, and I knowed what
+it was.”</p>
+
+<p>“What was it?”</p>
+
+<p>“Looked like a ghost flying past in the twilight.
+It was an albino—white deer. I told ’em so. And
+fin’ly Tom Lawrence, as I said, shot it. Why they
+hadn’t got it before, I guess, was because them
+that shot at it shivered so for fear ’twas a ghost
+they couldn’t hit the broad side of a barn!”
+and M’Graw broke into a loud laugh.</p>
+
+<p>“I did not know that deer were ever white,”
+Agnes said.</p>
+
+<p>“One o’ the wonders of nature,” Ike assured
+her. “And not frequent seen. But that critter
+was one—and a big one. Weighed upwards of
+two hundred pound. Tom give me a haunch, and
+when it was seasoned some, ’twasn’t much tougher
+than shoe-leather. <i>Me</i>, I kill me a doe when I
+want tender meat. My teeth is gettin’ kind of
+wore down,” chuckled the old man.</p>
+
+<p>“Was it really all white?” asked Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, that buck’s horns an’ hoofs was considerable
+lighter in color than ordinary. With
+them exceptions, and a few hairs on the forehead
+and a tuft on the hind leg, that critter was perfectly
+white. Queer. Jest an albino, as I said,”
+M’Graw concluded between puffs.</p>
+
+<p>Beside the chimney on a big nail driven into a
+log, hung a string of rusty keys, with one big shiny
+brass one by itself. Agnes said:</p>
+
+<p>“I guess you have to lock everything up when
+you leave home, don’t you, Mr. M’Graw?”</p>
+
+<p>“Me? Never lock a thing. We don’t have no
+tramps. And if I leave home I always leave a
+fire laid and everything so that a visitor can come
+right in and go to housekeeping. It’s a purty
+mean man that’ll lock up his cabin in the woods.
+No, ma’am. I never lock nothin’.”</p>
+
+<p>“But those keys?” the Corner House girl suggested
+curiously.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Them? Just spare keys I picked up.
+All but this,” and he reached for the brass key
+briskly. “This is the key to the Lodge padlock,
+I’m goin’ to take it up to that Mr. Howbridge of
+yours and tell him something about it. I’ll walk
+back with you.”</p>
+
+<p>He slipped into his leather jacket and buckled
+up his leggings. Then banking the fire on the
+hearth, he said he was ready to go. He put the
+big brass key in his pocket, but as he had intimated,
+he left the cabin door unlocked.</p>
+
+<p>Once outside, they saw that the sun was clouded
+over again. “That storm is surely a-coming,”
+Ike observed. “I shouldn’t wonder, when it does
+get here, if it turns out to be a humdinger. ‘Long
+threaten, long last,’ they say.”</p>
+
+<p>When they arrived at the Lodge the old man
+took a look at the fox Neale had hung up. He
+examined the small hole under the ear where the
+bullet had gone into the animal’s head.</p>
+
+<p>“Nice shot,” he muttered. “Dropped him
+without a struggle, I reckon. And you sure are
+right, boy,” he added to Neale. “It was a twenty-two.
+Nothin’ bigger. Humph! mighty funny,
+that.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, you let it hang here and I’ll skin it for
+you before I go back home. Fust off I want to
+see your Mr. Howbridge.”</p>
+
+<p>As M’Graw went through the hall to find the
+lawyer, Neale and Agnes were called by Luke from
+one of the sheds. His voice and beckoning hand
+hurried them to the spot.</p>
+
+<p>“What do you know about this?” cried Luke.
+“Here are two perfectly good sleds—a big one
+and a smaller. And one of those drivers that
+have just started back for Coxford, told me where
+there was a dandy slide.”</p>
+
+<p>“Crackey, that’s fine!” agreed the eager Neale.</p>
+
+<p>Agnes, too, was delighted. The other girls were
+eager to try the coasting.</p>
+
+<p>“But we must get away without the children.
+It is too far for them to go,” Ruth said. “At
+least, we must try it out before we let them join
+us.”</p>
+
+<p>“They are all right at the front with their snow
+man. I just saw them,” Agnes said. “Come
+on!” Agnes was always ready for sport.</p>
+
+<p>They started away from the house, the two boys
+dragging the bobsled. There were about four
+inches of fluffy, dry snow on top, and under that
+the drifts were almost ice-hard.</p>
+
+<p>“Ought to make the finest kind of sledding,”
+Luke declared.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile Ike M’Graw had found Mr. Howbridge
+reading a book in a corner of one of the
+comfortable settees in the big living-room. He
+dropped the book and stood up to greet the woodsman
+with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>“How are you, this morning, M’Graw?” asked
+the lawyer. “How about the key?”</p>
+
+<p>“Here ’tis,” said the guide. “Found it just
+where it should be. Looked as though it had
+never been touched since I was gone. But, of
+course, as I tell you, anybody might have been in
+my cabin. I don’t lock nothin’ up.”</p>
+
+<p>“If the key was used, it was by somebody who
+knew it was the key and where to find it,” Mr.
+Howbridge said reflectively.</p>
+
+<p>“You struck it there,” agreed Ike. “And
+there’s only two keys to that big padlock. Unless
+there’s been one made since Mr. Birdsall
+died,” he added.</p>
+
+<p>“If anybody borrowed the key and got in here,
+they got out again and locked the front door and
+returned the key.”</p>
+
+<p>“So ’twould seem. You say there wasn’t no
+marks in the snow when your folks fust came?”</p>
+
+<p>“No.”</p>
+
+<p>“It snowed the day after I went away from here
+to Ebettsville. They must have come here and
+gone before that snow then. That snow covered
+their tracks. How’s that?”</p>
+
+<p>“Not so good,” the lawyer promptly told him.
+“You forget the live embers in the grate. Those
+embers would not have stayed alive for five days.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ain’t that a fac’?” muttered the old man.</p>
+
+<p>They pondered in silence for a moment.</p>
+
+<p>Hedden suddenly entered the room. He seemed
+flurried, and his employer knew that something of
+moment had occurred.</p>
+
+<p>“What is the matter, Hedden?” the latter
+asked.</p>
+
+<p>“I have to report, sir, that somebody has been
+at the goods in the pantry—the canned food and
+other provisions that we brought up.”</p>
+
+<p>“What do you mean?” asked Mr. Howbridge
+curiously.</p>
+
+<p>“The chef, sir, says that quite a good deal of
+food has been stolen. He put the stuff away.
+There is a lot of it gone, sir—and that since last
+night at dinner time.”</p>
+
+<p>“Humph! Isn’t that strange?” murmured the
+lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>M’Graw grunted and started for the front door.</p>
+
+<p>“Where are you going, M’Graw?” asked Mr.
+Howbridge.</p>
+
+<p>“I’m going to find out who shot that fox,” was
+the woodsman’s enigmatical answer.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink17'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XVII—ALL DOWN HILL</a></h2>
+
+<p>The party of young people with the bobsled
+was very merry indeed just as soon as they got
+out of hearing of the Lodge. By striking into a
+path which opened into the wood right behind
+the barns, they cut off any view the two little girls
+and Sammy Pinkney might have caught of their
+departure.</p>
+
+<p>“I feel somewhat condemned for leaving them
+behind,” Ruth said. “Yet I know it is too far for
+such little people to go along and get back for
+lunch.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, they are having a good time,” Cecile said.
+“You make yourself a slave to your young family,
+Ruthie,” and she laughed.</p>
+
+<p>“We will make it up to the kids,” Luke joined
+in. “After we have tried the slide they can have
+a shot at it.”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s all right,” grinned Neale O’Neil.
+“But if Tess Kenway thinks she has been snubbed
+or neglected—well! you will not hear the last of
+it in a hurry, believe me.”</p>
+
+<p>This part of the wood into which the young
+people had entered was a sapling growth. Not
+many years before the timber had been cut and
+there were only brush clumps and small trees here
+now.</p>
+
+<p>Flocks of several different kinds of birds—sparrows,
+buntings, jays, swamp robins, and
+others—flew noisily about. There were berries
+and seeds to be found in the thickets. The birds
+had begun to forage far from the swamps—a sign
+that the snow was heavy and deep in their usual
+winter feeding places.</p>
+
+<p>“The dear little birdies!” cooed Agnes, waving
+her gloved hand at a flock that spread out fan-wise
+in the covert, frightened by the approach of
+the young people.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly there arose a vast racket—a whirring
+and trampling sound, as though it were of runaway
+hoofs. Agnes shrieked and glanced about
+her. The other girls looked startled.</p>
+
+<p>“That horse! It’s running away!” cried
+Agnes. “Oh, Neale!”</p>
+
+<p>“Shucks!” said that youth, scornfully. “‘The
+dear little birdies!’ Ho, ho! I thought you liked
+’em, Aggie?”</p>
+
+<p>“Liked what?” she demanded, as the noise
+faded away into the wood.</p>
+
+<p>“The birdies. That was a flock of partridges.
+They can make some noise, can’t they? Food in
+the swamps must be getting mighty scarce, or they
+would not be away up here.”</p>
+
+<p>“Who ever would have thought it?” murmured
+Cecile. “Partridges!”</p>
+
+<p>“Wish I had a gun,” said Luke.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t be afraid. They won’t bite,” chuckled
+Neale O’Neil. “And we won’t be likely to meet
+anything much more dangerous than birds in the
+day time.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yet we saw that big cat yesterday,” Ruth
+said.</p>
+
+<p>“It ran all right. We might have brought Tom
+Jonah; only he was playing with the kids,” said
+Neale. “Anyway, the best he would do would
+be to scare up creatures in the thickets that we
+otherwise would not know were there.”</p>
+
+<p>“Now, stop that, Neale O’Neil!” cried Agnes.
+“Are you trying to frighten us?”</p>
+
+<p>“Shucks, Aggie!” he returned. “You know the
+kind of wild animal we scared up this morning
+when we found Ike M’Graw’s place.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” cried Agnes, with laughter.</p>
+
+<p>“What’s the joke?” asked Luke.</p>
+
+<p>So Neale told the rest of the party how he and
+Agnes had followed the footprints of the “deer”
+clear to the old man’s cabin.</p>
+
+<p>“And there we could hear them squealing in
+their pen,” was the way Neale finished it.</p>
+
+<p>“Two mighty hunters, you!” chuckled Luke.</p>
+
+<p>The road over which they dragged the sled soon
+became steep. They were now climbing a long hill
+through heavier timber. It was a straight path,
+and the crown of the ascent was more than a mile
+from Red Deer Lodge.</p>
+
+<p>Half way up they passed a fork in the timber
+road. The roads were not rutted at all, for they
+were full of firm snow. This second road dipped
+to the north, running down the steep hill and out
+of sight.</p>
+
+<p>“That chap who told me about this slide told
+me to ’ware that road,” Luke said. “Around that
+curve he said it was steep and there’d be no stopping
+the sled for a long way. If we stick to the
+right track, we’ll slide back almost to the Lodge
+itself.”</p>
+
+<p>“That’ll help some,” Cecile said. “I am getting
+tired tramping over this snow. It’s a
+harder pull than I imagined it would be.”</p>
+
+<p>“We were very wise not to let the children
+come,” Ruth remarked.</p>
+
+<p>Uphill for all of a mile was, in truth, no easy
+climb.</p>
+
+<p>Agnes and Neale O’Neil began to bicker.</p>
+
+<p>“I’m no horse,” said Neale rather grumpily,
+when Agnes suggested that the boys could drag
+the girls on the sled.</p>
+
+<p>“No; your ears are too long,” she retorted impishly.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, children!” admonished Ruth, “How is
+it you two always manage to fight?”</p>
+
+<p>“They’re only showing off,” chuckled Luke
+Shepard. “In secret they have a terrible crush
+on each other.”</p>
+
+<p>“Such slang!” groaned his sister.</p>
+
+<p>“Real college brand,” said Agnes cheerfully.
+“I do love slang, Luke. Tell us some more.”</p>
+
+<p>“I object! No, no!” cried Ruth. “She learns
+quite enough high-school slang. Don’t teach her
+any more of the college brand, Luke.”</p>
+
+<p>They puffed up the final rise and arrived at the
+top of the ascent. This was the very peak of the
+ridge on which Red Deer Lodge was built.</p>
+
+<p>Because it was winter and all but the evergreens
+and oaks were denuded of leaves, they could see
+much farther over the surrounding landscape than
+would have been possible in the leafy seasons;
+however, on all sides the forest was so thick at
+a distance that a good view of the country was not
+easily obtained.</p>
+
+<p>The valley toward the north was black with
+spruce and hemlock. One could not see if there
+were clearings in the valley. It seemed there to
+be an unbroken and primeval forest.</p>
+
+<p>This valley was included in the Birdsall estate,
+and the timber which the Neven Lumber Company
+wished to cut practically lay entirely in that wild
+valley.</p>
+
+<p>The hills to the west were plainly visible. Their
+caps were either bald and snow covered, or
+crowned with the black-green forest. Toward the
+lakeside the slopes were alternately tree covered
+and of raw stumpage where the timber had recently
+been cut. These “slashes” were ugly looking
+spots.</p>
+
+<p>“That is what all that part yonder of this estate
+will look like when the lumbermen get through,”
+said Ruth. “Isn’t it a shame?”</p>
+
+<p>“But trees have to be cut down some time. I
+heard M’Graw say that much of the timber on this
+place was beginning to deteriorate,” Luke said in
+reply.</p>
+
+<p>“Shucks!” exclaimed Neale O’Neil, “if a tree
+is beautiful, why not let it stand? Why slaughter
+it?”</p>
+
+<p>“There speaks the altruistic spirit of the young
+artist,” laughed Luke. “Ask Mr. Howbridge.
+How about the money value of the tree?”</p>
+
+<p>“Shucks!” Neale repeated, but with his eyes
+twinkling. “Is money everything?”</p>
+
+<p>“Let me tell you, boy,” said Luke a little bitterly;
+“it buys almost everything that is worth
+while in this world. I want beautiful things, too;
+but I know it will cost a slew of money to buy
+them. I am going to set out and try for money
+first, then!”</p>
+
+<p>“Hear the practical youth!” said Cecile.
+“That is what he learns at college. Say! aren’t
+we going to slide downhill? Or did we come up
+here to discuss political economy?”</p>
+
+<p>Luke, holding up his hand in affirmation, declared:
+“I vow to discuss neither polit, bugs,
+pills, psyche, trig—”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, stop!” commanded Ruth, yet with curiosity.
+“What are all those horrid sounding
+things?”</p>
+
+<p>“Pshaw!” cried the collegian’s sister, “I
+know that much of his old slang. ‘Trig’ is trigonometry,
+of course; ‘psyche’ is psychology;
+‘pills’ means physics; ‘bugs’ is biology; and
+‘polit,’ of course, is political economy. Those college
+boys are awfully smart, aren’t they?”</p>
+
+<p>“I want to sli-i-ide!” wailed Agnes, stamping
+her feet in the snow. “I am turning into a lump
+of ice, standing here.”</p>
+
+<p>“Get aboard, then,” answered Neale.</p>
+
+<p>She plumped herself on the sled. Luke straddled
+the seat just behind the steering wheel. The
+other girls took their places in rotation after
+Agnes, while Neale made ready to push off and
+then jump on himself at the rear.</p>
+
+<p>“Ready?” he cried.</p>
+
+<p>“Let her go!” responded the steersman.</p>
+
+<p>“Hang on, girls!” commanded Neale, as he
+started the sled with a mighty shove.</p>
+
+<p>The bobsled moved slowly. The runners
+grunted and strained over the soft snow that
+packed under them and, at first, retarded the
+movement of the sled. But soon the power of
+gravitation asserted itself. Neale settled himself
+on the seat. The wind began to whistle past their
+ears. In front a fine mist of snow particles was
+thrown up.</p>
+
+<p>Faster and faster they rushed down the descent.
+The young people had thought this trail very
+smooth as they climbed it; but now they found
+there were plenty of “thank-you-ma’ams” in the
+path. The bobsled bumped over these, gathering
+speed, and finally began to leave the snow and
+fairly fly into the air when it struck a ridge.</p>
+
+<p>The girls screamed when these hummocks
+arrived. But they laughed between them, too! It
+was a most exciting trip.</p>
+
+<p>Like an arrow the sled shot past the fork in the
+road, keeping to the left. But it would have been
+a very easy matter, as Luke Shepard saw, to turn
+the sled into the steeper descent.</p>
+
+<p>They started up a gray and white rabbit beside
+the path, and it raced them in desperate fright for
+several hundred yards, before it knew enough to
+turn off the road and leap into the brush. Luke’s
+head was down and his eyes half closed as he
+stared ahead. But Neale gave voice to his delight
+in reëchoed shouts.</p>
+
+<p>There were slides in Milton. The selectmen
+gave up certain streets to the young folk for coasting.
+But those streets were nothing like this.</p>
+
+<p>On and on the bobsled flew, its pace increasing
+with every length. Although this wood road was
+in no place really steep, the hill was so long, and
+its slant so continuous that the momentum the
+sled gathered carried it over any little level that
+there might be, and at the foot of the decline still
+shot the merry crew over the snow at a swift pace
+and for a long distance.</p>
+
+<p>Indeed, when the sled stopped they were almost
+at the back of the Red Deer Lodge premises. A
+mellow horn was calling them to lunch when they
+alighted.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! wasn’t it bully?” gasped the delighted
+Agnes. “I never did have such a sled-ride!”</p>
+
+<p>“How about your trip up the lake!” Cecile
+asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! But that scooter was different.”</p>
+
+<p>The other girls were quite as pleased with the
+slide as Agnes; and the three ran into the house
+to dress for lunch, chattering like magpies, while
+the boys put the sled away under the shed.</p>
+
+<p>When Luke and Neale went into the house they
+found Ike M’Graw skinning the fox in the back
+kitchen, Tom Jonah being a much interested spectator.
+The woodsman beckoned Neale to him.</p>
+
+<p>“Look here, young feller,” he said. “You seen
+this critter shot last night, you say?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” replied the boy.</p>
+
+<p>“Where was it shot from? I’m derned if I can
+find any place where the feller stood along the edge
+of the woods to shoot him.”</p>
+
+<p>“No. I couldn’t find any footprints either,”
+Neale confessed.</p>
+
+<p>“Not knowing from which direction the bullet
+came—”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, but I do know that, Mr. M’Graw. I am
+pretty positive, at least. I have been doubtful
+whether to say anything about it or not—and
+that’s a fact.”</p>
+
+<p>“What d’you mean?” demanded the old man,
+eyeing him shrewdly.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I thought when I heard the shot and the
+fox was killed that the explosion was right over
+my head.”</p>
+
+<p>“What’s that? Over your head! In the attic?”</p>
+
+<p>“That is where the shot came from—yes.”</p>
+
+<p>“Air you positive?” drawled the old man.</p>
+
+<p>“I went up there this morning and saw the place
+where the fellow had rested the barrel of his gun
+across the window sill to shoot.”</p>
+
+<p>“My! My!” muttered Ike thoughtfully.
+“And there wasn’t nobody up there this morning?”</p>
+
+<p>“No. And I asked Hedden, and he said neither
+of the other men knew how to use a gun and that
+they all were in bed at the time the fox was shot.”</p>
+
+<p>“Do tell!” muttered the woodsman. “Then
+they—well, the feller that shot the fox was up
+there in the attic about bedtime, was he?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. Who do you suppose he was, Mr.
+M’Graw?” asked Neale curiously.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I wouldn’t want to make a guess. This
+here man workin’ in the kitchen tells me that there
+wasn’t a foot mark in the snow at all when he
+got up and went out of the back door here the
+fust time this morning. And, of course, there
+wasn’t no footprints at the front of the house, was
+there?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, no! Not until after breakfast time.”</p>
+
+<p>“Uh-huh! Well, after this John had tramped
+back an’ forth to the woodshed and the like half
+a dozen times, anybody could have gone out of
+here without their footprints being noticed.
+Ain’t that a fac’?”</p>
+
+<p>He said this to himself more than to Neale, who
+had become vastly interested in the subject. He
+eagerly watched the old man’s weather-beaten
+face.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly the woodsman raised his head and
+looked at Neale thoughtfully. He asked a question
+that seemed to have nothing at all to do with
+the subject in hand.</p>
+
+<p>“What kind of a dog is this here Tom Jonah?”
+Ike demanded. “Ain’t he got no nose?”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink18'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XVIII—FIGURING IT OUT</a></h2>
+
+<p>Of course Ike M’Graw could see for himself
+very easily that Tom Jonah had a nose. It was
+pointed just then at the fox pelt in the old woodsman’s
+hands, and was wrinkled as the dog sniffed
+at the skin.</p>
+
+<p>So Neale O’Neil knew that the man meant something
+a little different from what he said. He,
+in fact, wanted to know if Tom Jonah was keen
+on the scent, and Neale answered him to that
+end.</p>
+
+<p>“We think he’s got a pretty good nose, Mr.
+M’Graw, for a Newfoundland. Of course, Tom
+Jonah is not a hunting dog. If he runs a rabbit
+he runs him by sight, not by scent. But give him
+something that one of the children wears, and
+he’ll hunt that child out, as sure as sure! They
+play hide and seek with him just as though he
+were one of themselves—only Tom Jonah is always
+‘it.’”</p>
+
+<p>“Uh-huh?” grunted the old man. Then he
+said: “Don’t seem as though any stranger could
+have come down from the attic and got through
+that hall yonder without this dog making some
+sort of racket.”</p>
+
+<p>“I never thought of Tom Jonah,” admitted
+Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“He was in here all night, they tell me,” went
+on Ike.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. But didn’t the kitchen man, John, let
+him out when he first came downstairs this
+morning?”</p>
+
+<p>“No. I asked him. He said the dog didn’t
+seem to want to go out. He opened that door
+yonder into this back kitchen and called the dog.
+This here dog come to the door, but he did not
+want to go out and turned away. So John shut
+the door again.”</p>
+
+<p>“Crackey!” exclaimed Neale. “Then there
+was somebody in here, and don’t you forget it,
+Mr. M’Graw!”</p>
+
+<p>“Uh-huh? But why didn’t the dog give tongue?
+Was it somebody the dog knowed? You see, son,
+there’s been food stole from that pantry yonder
+durin’ the night. Could it be the feller that shot
+the fox from the attic winder was right in here
+when John called the dog, loadin’ up his knapsack
+with grub?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why—why—”</p>
+
+<p>“This dog must ha’ knowed him—eh?”</p>
+
+<p>“I—I suppose so. But who could it be?”
+demanded Neale with wondering emphasis.
+“Surely it was none of our servants. And Luke
+Shepard and Sammy and I were in bed in one
+room. The girls—Mr. Howbridge—Mrs. MacCall—”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess,” said the old man, grinning, “that
+the lady and that lawyer man can be counted out
+of it. None of you brought a twenty-two rifle with
+you, anyway.”</p>
+
+<p>“No.”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s what the fox was shot with. Here’s
+the pellet,” and Ike brought the little flattened
+lead bullet out of his vest pocket. “If it hadn’t
+been a good shot—spang through the brain—’twould
+never have killed the fox. He had his
+head on one side, yappin’, and that bullet took him
+right.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, better keep still about this. No use
+frightening the ladies. Girls an’ women is easy
+frightened, I expect. I’ll speak again to Mr. Howbridge
+about it. But this here dog—”</p>
+
+<p>He shook his head over Tom Jonah’s shortcomings,
+while Neale ran away to wash his hands and
+face before appearing at the lunch table.</p>
+
+<p>The children around the table were in something
+of an uproar. Mrs. MacCall and Ruth were
+obliged to be firm in order to quiet Sammy, and
+Tess, and Dot.</p>
+
+<p>For Agnes, unable to keep anything to herself,
+had blurted out all about the lovely sled-ride the
+older ones had enjoyed. Immediately the three
+younger children decided that they had been
+cheated.</p>
+
+<p>“We wanted to go tobogganing, too,” Tess declared.</p>
+
+<p>“I just <i>love</i> sliding downhill,” wailed Dot.</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” sniffed Sammy Pinkney. “A feller
+can’t have no fun where there’s big fellers and
+big girls. They always put you down, and leave
+you out of the best things.”</p>
+
+<p>“You shall go sliding tomorrow if the snow
+holds off,” Ruth promised.</p>
+
+<p>“Why not this afternoon, Ruthie?” begged
+Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“Sister’s got something else to do this afternoon.
+Wait until tomorrow,” the oldest Kenway
+replied.</p>
+
+<p>“It’s snowing already,” muttered Sammy disconsolately.</p>
+
+<p>There were a few flakes in the air. But it did
+not look as though any heavy fall had begun.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t see why we need to have you go with
+us to slide,” Tess said, pouting. “We go sliding
+without you in Milton.”</p>
+
+<p>“This is different, Tess,” Ruth said firmly.
+“Now, let us hear no more about it! You will
+annoy Mr. Howbridge.”</p>
+
+<p>Sammy winked slyly at the two little girls.
+“Just you wait!” he mouthed so that only Tess
+and Dot heard him.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Sammy!” murmured Dot. “What’ll you
+do?”</p>
+
+<p>“Just you wait!” repeated the boy, and that
+mysterious statement comforted Dot a good deal,
+if it did not Tess Kenway. Dot believed that
+Sammy was fertile in expedient. She had run
+away with him once “to be pirates.”</p>
+
+<p>Before the meal was over, Hedden came in and
+bent beside Mr. Howbridge to whisper into his
+ear.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Has he come back again? I wondered
+where he went so suddenly,” said the lawyer.
+“Yes. Tell him I’ll come out to see him as soon
+as I am through.”</p>
+
+<p>Neale knew that he referred to M’Graw.
+Bright-eyed and interested, he bent forward to
+say to Mr. Howbridge:</p>
+
+<p>“I just told Mr. M’Graw something that I guess
+you’d wish to know, too, Mr. Howbridge. May I
+go with you when you speak to him?”</p>
+
+<p>“Certainly, my boy. There’s nothing secret
+about it—not really. We are only puzzled about
+a suspicion that we have—”</p>
+
+<p>“That there was somebody in the house that
+ought not to be here,” whispered the boy.</p>
+
+<p>“That’s it. How did you know?”</p>
+
+<p>“I’ll tell you later,” returned Neale O’Neil.</p>
+
+<p>Agnes was glaring at him in a most indignant
+fashion. It always angered the second Corner
+House girl if Neale seemed to have any secret that
+she did not share.</p>
+
+<p>“What’s the matter with you?” she hissed,
+when Neale turned away from their host. “Don’t
+you know it isn’t polite to whisper at table, Neale
+O’Neil?”</p>
+
+<p>“What are you doing it for, then?” he asked
+her, grinning, and would vouchsafe no further
+explanation of the secret between Mr. Howbridge
+and himself.</p>
+
+<p>As soon as the lawyer arose from the table to
+go out to the kitchen to interview Ike, Neale
+jumped up to go with him. Agnes saw him depart
+with sparkling eyes and a very red face.
+She was really angry with Neale O’Neil.</p>
+
+<p>The boy was too much interested in the mystery
+of the shooter of the fox and how he had got in
+and out of Red Deer Lodge to be much bothered
+by Agnes’ vexation. He and the lawyer found the
+old woodsman sitting in the servants’ dining-room
+where he had been eating.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, sir,” he began, when Mr. Howbridge and
+the boy entered, “’twixt us all, I reckon we’re
+gettin’ to the bottom of this here mystery. Did
+I tell you I couldn’t find no place where the feller
+stood out there in the snow last evening to shoot
+that fox from?”</p>
+
+<p>“No.”</p>
+
+<p>“But it’s a fac’. Now you tell him, sonny, what
+you told me about what you found in the attic.
+I’ve been up and made sure ’twas so.”</p>
+
+<p>Neale told the surprised Mr. Howbridge of the
+proved fact that the fox was shot from one of the
+attic windows.</p>
+
+<p>“And ’twas a play-toy rifle that done it—a
+twenty-two,” said the woodsman, as though to
+clinch some fact that had risen in his own mind,
+if not in the minds of the others.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, let’s figger it out. We got enough fac’s
+now to point purty conclusive to who done it.
+Yes, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, Ike, I don’t see that,” observed Mr.
+Howbridge.</p>
+
+<p>“But you will, Mister, in a minute or so,” declared
+the old man, nodding with confidence.
+“Now, look you: Whoever was in this here house
+and made that fire in Miz’ Birdsall’s sittin’-room,
+was here when your people came day before yesterday.”</p>
+
+<p>“No!” ejaculated Mr. Howbridge.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes!” repeated M’Graw with decision.</p>
+
+<p>“But you found that key in your cabin, did you
+not?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. But I tell you I’ve figgered that out.
+Whoever ’twas come here, got the key, come in
+here, opened the back door, and then locked the
+front door on the outside same as always.”</p>
+
+<p>“But—”</p>
+
+<p>“Wait! No buts about it,” interrupted the
+woodsman. “I got it figgered to a fare-you-well,
+I tell you. Now! The feller locked the front
+door, went back to my shanty and hung up the key,
+and then came back in by the rear door. See?
+He—ahem!—was in here when that man, Hedden,
+of yours, and the others, come.”</p>
+
+<p>“But there were no footprints of human beings
+about the house in the snow.”</p>
+
+<p>“That’s all right. The feller that built the fire
+upstairs had done all his walking around before
+the snow fell the day after I went to Ebettsville.
+Don’t you see? He didn’t leave here because his
+footprints would be seen, and he couldn’t lock the
+house up behind him if he did leave and make it
+look as though it had never been opened.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are guessing at a lot of this!” exclaimed
+the lawyer, not at all convinced.</p>
+
+<p>“No. I’m jest figgerin’. Now, this Neale boy
+here heard that shot fired upstairs that killed the
+fox. He went up this mornin’ and saw where the
+shot was fired from. I seen it, too. So the feller
+that opened the Lodge and that lit the fire was
+up there at ten or half past last evening, for
+sure.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well?” murmured the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“He didn’t go out during the night, or his footprints
+would have been seen by John this morning
+in the new-fallen snow.”</p>
+
+<p>“That sounds right.”</p>
+
+<p>“It is right!” said the old man vigorously.
+“Now we come to this here dog you brought.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, yes!” cried Mr. Howbridge. “How about
+Tom Jonah? Surely if there had been a stranger
+about—one who stole food from the pantry—he
+would have interfered.”</p>
+
+<p>“Mebbe he would. And mebbe again he
+wouldn’t. He’s a mighty friendly dog.”</p>
+
+<p>“But he is a splendid watchdog,” interposed
+Neale O’Neil.</p>
+
+<p>“That may be, too,” Ike said, quite unshaken
+in his opinion. “If anybody had come in from
+outside and undertaken to disturb anything, that
+old dog would probably have been right on the
+job.”</p>
+
+<p>“I see your point,” Mr. Howbridge admitted.
+“But this person who came down from the garret
+must have been a stranger.”</p>
+
+<p>“Now we’re gittin’ to it. Let’s figger some
+more,” said M’Graw, with a chuckle. “If you
+think hard, an’ figger close enough, I guess ’most
+any puzzle can be solved.”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink19'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XIX—SAMMY TAKES THE BIT IN HIS TEETH</a></h2>
+
+<p>M’Graw began slowly to fill his pipe. Mr. Howbridge
+saw that it was useless to hurry him, so
+he smiled at Neale and waited. When the tobacco
+was alight to suit him, Ike continued his
+“figgerin’.”</p>
+
+<p>“When this here dog,” he said, looking at Neale
+in turn, “is at home, I guess he knows everybody
+in the neighborhood, don’t he?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. But surely, you don’t think anybody
+from Milton is up here at Red Deer Lodge, except
+just these people that Mr. Howbridge brought?”</p>
+
+<p>“Hold on. I’m doin’ the askin’. You just answer
+me, sonny,” chuckled Ike. “Now, let’s see.
+He does know lots o’ folks—especially young
+folks—around where he lives when he’s at home,
+don’t he?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, Tom Jonah,” said Neale, “knows every
+boy and girl that comes past the old Corner
+House. He’s a great friend of the kids.”</p>
+
+<p>“Jest so,” said M’Graw, as Mr. Howbridge
+started and was about to speak. But the woodsman
+put up a hand and said to the lawyer:
+“Wait a minute. This man, Hedden, has looked
+over the stuff you brought up here in the line of
+canned goods and sech. He says what was stole
+was mostly sweets—canned peaches, an’ pears,
+an’ pineapple, an’ sugar-stuff, besides condensed
+milk. Jest what children would like.”</p>
+
+<p>“The twins!” exclaimed Mr. Howbridge. “Do
+you think it could be possible, after all, Ike?”</p>
+
+<p>“Goodness!” gasped Neale.</p>
+
+<p>“Looks mighty like children’s work,” said the
+woodsman reflectively. “I knowed little Ralph
+had a twenty-two rifle. I taught him to shoot with
+it. He does me proud when it comes to shootin’.
+Yes, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“But to get clear up here—”</p>
+
+<p>“Them is purty smart children,” said the old
+man. “And it looks, as I say, like their work.
+Who else would give themselves dead away by
+shootin’ that fox out of the winder? No grown
+person would have done that if they didn’t want
+to be caught in the house.</p>
+
+<p>“Then, Ralph and Rowena would have knowed
+where that key hung. They’d be more’n likely to
+build the fire in their ma’s sittin’-room. Now,
+when they sneaked out o’ the house this mornin’,
+they’d take just this kind of stuff that’s been took
+from the pantry.”</p>
+
+<p>“I see. I see.”</p>
+
+<p>“And the dog clinches it. He’s a friend to all
+children. He’d never have stopped them, especially
+as they was in the house and didn’t come
+from outside.”</p>
+
+<p>“I believe you are right,” admitted Mr. Howbridge.</p>
+
+<p>“I’m great on figgerin’,” said the woodsman.
+“Now, let’s see what sort of a nose that there
+dog’s got.”</p>
+
+<p>“You mean Tom Jonah?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. I ain’t got no dog. There ain’t none
+nearer’n Sim Hackett’s beagle at Ebettsville that’s
+wuth anything on the trail. Them youngsters
+must have gone somewhere, Mr. Howbridge. And
+they can’t be fur off. We’ve got to find ’em before
+this here storm that’s breedin’ comes down
+on us. There must be tracks somewheres, and
+a trail a good dog can sniff.”</p>
+
+<p>“I understand what you mean. But how shall
+we start the dog on their trail! We have nothing
+the twins have worn,” said Mr. Howbridge.</p>
+
+<p>“Let’s look around,” suggested Ike. “Up-stairs
+in that sittin’-room, where you found the
+live coals—or, your man did—there’s a closet
+where some of the twins’ clo’es used to hang.
+Mebbe there’s some there now. If that there dog
+has got a nose at all, an’ he sniffed them children
+good this mornin’, he’ll know the smell of ’em
+again. Yes, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is a good idea,” admitted Mr. Howbridge.
+“You go out and see if you can find any
+impressions of the children’s feet in the snow, Ike.
+I will hunt in the rooms upstairs for something
+the twins may have worn.”</p>
+
+<p>“Stockin’s are best—stockin’s that ain’t been
+washed,” said the woodsman. “Or mittens, or
+gloves. Come on, sonny,” he added to Neale
+O’Neil. “You come with me and we’ll try to
+find some trail marks in the snow.” He glanced
+at the window. “And we’ve got to hurry. It’s
+snowin’ right hard now, and will smother marks
+and everything if it keeps on this way for long.”</p>
+
+<p>Just then, while there was so much interest being
+felt in the Birdsall twins and the possibility
+of their having been at Red Deer Lodge, somebody
+should have felt a revived interest in three
+other children—Sammy Pinkney and the two
+youngest Corner House girls.</p>
+
+<p>They had gone out after lunch, presumably to
+continue the building of the snow man in front of
+the Lodge. The older girls and Luke were engaged
+in their own matters, and thought not at
+all of the little folks. But Sammy, Tess and Dot
+had quite tired of playing in the snow.</p>
+
+<p>“They’re awful mean not to have taken us
+slidin’ with them,” declared Sammy, sitting on the
+front step and making no effort to continue the
+work of snow man building.</p>
+
+<p>“I love to slide,” repeated Dot, sadly.</p>
+
+<p>“And now it’s going to snow,” said Tess, biting
+her lip. “If it snows a lot we can’t slide tomorrow.”</p>
+
+<p>“Awful mean,” reiterated Sammy. “Say!
+Aggie said there was a small sled back there where
+they found the big one. Let’s go and see it.”</p>
+
+<p>Any idea seemed good to the disappointed little
+girls. Even just looking at the sled they could
+use, if nothing happened, was interesting. They
+followed Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>But Sammy had more in his mind than just the
+idea of looking at the sled. Only, from past experience,
+he knew that to get Tess and Dot Kenway
+to leave the path of rectitude took some sharp
+“figuring.” So he, like Ike M’Graw, was exercising
+his faculties.</p>
+
+<p>They came to the shed.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, what a nice sled!” cried Dot, as Sammy
+drew out a shiny sled, big enough for three or four
+little folks, and with a steering arrangement in
+front.</p>
+
+<p>“It’s a better sled than the one I have at home,”
+admitted Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“I guess we could slide all right on that,” said
+Tess slowly.</p>
+
+<p>“Guess we could!” agreed the boy.</p>
+
+<p>“I’d like a ride on it,” said Dot wistfully.</p>
+
+<p>“Get on, kid. Me and Tess will drag you,” said
+Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>Dot overlooked the objectionable way in which
+Sammy had addressed her and hurried to seat
+herself on the sled. Sammy and Tess took hold of
+the rope. It was not very hard to pull such a light
+body as that of the fairylike Dot through the soft
+snow.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy wisely turned away from the Lodge and
+followed the tracks of the bobsled. In two minutes
+they were out of sight of the Lodge, and even
+of the sheds. At that time Neale and the old
+woodsman had not come out for the purpose of
+searching the vicinity of the Lodge for the footprints
+of the Birdsall twins.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy and the two smallest Corner House girls
+moved up the woods path which the other sledding
+party had found and followed. If Ruth and the
+others had gone this way, surely they could safely
+follow the same route. Although the snow was
+increasing, even the cautious Tess Kenway saw no
+danger menacing the trio.</p>
+
+<p>But at first she had no idea just what Sammy
+had determined upon. In fact, Sammy Pinkney
+had taken the bit in his teeth, and he was determined
+to do exactly what they had been forbidden
+to do. If the older ones could slide downhill, why
+could he and the little girls not have the same
+pleasure?</p>
+
+<p>He and Tess drew Dot for a long way, much to
+that little girl’s delight. Then the uphill grade
+tired Tess so much that she had to stop.</p>
+
+<p>“Shift with Dot,” Sammy said. “Come on,
+Dot. You and I will drag Tess a piece.”</p>
+
+<p>The little girl was willing, and she and her sister
+changed places. Dot could not do much to aid
+Sammy, but he buckled down to the work and
+pulled manfully.</p>
+
+<p>When he had to stop, puffing, they were then so
+far up the hill that his suggestion that they keep
+on to the top and slide back, met with even Tess’
+approval.</p>
+
+<p>“We’ve come so far, we might’s well finish it,”
+she said.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I hope it isn’t much farther,” said Dot,
+“for it’s awful hard walking in this snow. And
+it’s snowing harder, too.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t be a ’fraid-cat, Dottie,” snorted Sammy.
+“I never saw such a girl!”</p>
+
+<p>“Am not a ’fraid-cat!” declared the smallest
+Corner House girl, prompt to deny such an impeachment.
+“Snow don’t hurt. But you can’t
+see where you are going when it snows so thick,”</p>
+
+<p>“Shucks!” said Sammy. “We can’t get lost
+on this road, can we, Tess?”</p>
+
+<p>“No-o,” agreed Tess. “I guess we can’t. We
+can’t get off the path, that’s sure. And we can
+see the marks the big sled made all the way.”</p>
+
+<p>These tracks, however, were rapidly being effaced.
+The children were not cold, for as the snow
+increased it seemed to become warmer, and the
+hard walking helped to keep them warm.</p>
+
+<p>They had to put Dot back on the sled and draw
+her the final two or three hundred yards to the top
+of the hill. There, fast as the snow was gathering,
+they could see where the other coasters had turned
+the bobsled around and prepared to launch themselves
+from the top of the hill.</p>
+
+<p>“I guess they slid almost all the way home,”
+said Tess, with some anxiety. “I hope we can do
+as well, Sammy.”</p>
+
+<p>“Sure,” agreed Sammy. “Ain’t no need to
+worry about that. Now I’m goin’ to lie right
+down, and Dot can straddle me. Then you push
+off and hang on at the back end of the sled, Tess.
+Don’t you kids fall off.”</p>
+
+<p>“I wish you wouldn’t call me a kid, Sammy
+Pinkney,” complained Dot. “And don’t wiggle
+so if I’ve got to sit on you.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I got to get fixed,” Sammy rejoined.
+“Hang on now. All ready, Tess?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. My! how the wind blows this snow into
+your face.”</p>
+
+<p>“Put your head down when we get started.
+I’ve got to keep lookin’ ahead. Bet this is a
+dandy slide—and such a long one!”</p>
+
+<p>“Here we go!” cried Tess, pushing with vigor.</p>
+
+<p>The sled started. It seemed to slide over the
+soft snow very nicely. She scrambled on, and,
+sitting sideways, clung with both hands to the
+rails. Dot was hanging to Sammy’s shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>“Choo! Choo! Choo! Here we go!” yelled
+Sammy, wriggling with eagerness.</p>
+
+<p>“<i>Do</i> keep still, Sammy!” begged Dot.</p>
+
+<p>But the sled did not gain speed. The gathering
+snow impeded the craft even on the down grade.</p>
+
+<p>“Kick! Kick behind, Tess!” yelled Sammy.
+“Kick <i>hard</i>.”</p>
+
+<p>“I—I am kicking,” panted his friend. “Why
+don’t the old thing go better?”</p>
+
+<p>“This snow is loadin’ right up in front of it,”
+sputtered Sammy. “It’s too de-e-ep! Aw—shucks!”</p>
+
+<p>The sled almost stopped. Then it went over a
+thank-you-ma’am and slid a little faster. The
+slide was nowhere near as nice as they had expected.
+Why! they were not going downhill much
+faster than they had come up.</p>
+
+<p>The snow was sifting down now very thickly,
+and in a very short time the trio was likely to have
+to drag the empty sled through deep drifts. Even
+Sammy was secretly sorry they had come such a
+long way from the Lodge. Although it was barely
+mid-afternoon, it seemed to be growing dark.</p>
+
+<p>They struggled to make the sled slide, however;
+neither Sammy nor Tess was a child who easily
+gave up when circumstances became obstinate.
+Tess continued to dig her heels into the snow, and
+when the sled almost stopped, Sammy plunged his
+arms elbow deep into the snow to aid in its movement.</p>
+
+<p>But suddenly they went over a hummock. It
+seemed a steep descent on the other side. In spite
+of the gathering snow the sled got under better
+headway.</p>
+
+<p>“Hurrah, Tess!” yelled Sammy. “We’re all
+right now.”</p>
+
+<p>“I—I hope so!” gasped the older girl.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” shrieked Dot. “We’re going!”</p>
+
+<p>They really were going—or, so it seemed.
+Faster and faster ran the sled, for the hill had
+suddenly become steep. It was snowing too
+thickly for any of them to notice that this part of
+the track was entirely new to them.</p>
+
+<p>They shot around a turn and took another dip
+toward the valley. Sammy did not mind the snow
+beating into his face now. He yelled with pleasure.
+The little girls hung on, delighted. The sled
+sped downward.</p>
+
+<p>All marks of the bobsled’s runners were long
+since lost under the new snow. The hill grew
+steeper. Sammy’s yells were half stifled by the
+wind and snow.</p>
+
+<p>It did seem as though that slide was a very long
+one! In climbing the hill the trio had had no idea
+they had walked so far. And how steep it was!</p>
+
+<p>Over a level piece the sled would travel at a
+moderate rate, and then shoot down a sudden decline
+that almost took their breath. Surely they
+must have traveled almost to the Lodge from
+which they had started.</p>
+
+<p>Finally the path became level. Great trees rose
+all about them. They could see but a short distance
+in any direction because of the falling snow.</p>
+
+<p>The sled stopped. The girls hopped off and
+Sammy struggled to his feet and shook the snow
+out of his eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” he choked. “What a slide!
+Did you ever, Tess?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, I never did,” admitted Tess quite seriously.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” cried Dot. “Let’s go home. I’m co-co-o-old.
+Why—why—” she gasped suddenly,
+looking about on all sides.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, don’t cry about it,” snorted Sammy.
+“Of course we’ll go home. We must be almost
+there now—we slid so far.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, yes. We <i>must</i> be near Red Deer Lodge,”
+agreed Tess.</p>
+
+<p>It did not look like any place they had ever
+seen before. The trees were much taller than any
+they had noticed about the Lodge. Yet there was
+the open path ahead of them. They set Dot upon
+the sled again, and Tess helped Sammy drag it and
+her sister straight ahead. Somewhere in that direction
+they were all three sure Red Deer Lodge
+was situated.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink20'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XX—FOLLOWING ANOTHER TRAIL</a></h2>
+
+<p>After all the activities of the forenoon both by
+the older boys and girls of the vacation party at
+Red Deer Lodge, and by the children as well, the
+soft snow was considerably marked up by footprints
+around the premises.</p>
+
+<p>Ike M’Graw and Neale O’Neil, searching for
+prints of the feet of those who they thought had
+left the vicinity of the house early that morning,
+struck directly off for the edge of the clearing.</p>
+
+<p>“The best we can do,” M’Graw declared, “is to
+follow the line of the woods clean around the
+clearing. Somewhere, whoever ’tis got that fox
+and lifted the canned goods, must have struck into
+the woods. They ain’t hidin’ in the barns or anywhere
+here. I’ve been searchin’ them. That’s
+certain.”</p>
+
+<p>Neale had very bright eyes, and not much could
+escape them; but the snow was coming down fast
+now and even he could not distinguish marks many
+yards ahead.</p>
+
+<p>Here and there they beheld footprints; but always
+examination proved them to be of somebody
+who belonged at the Lodge. The prints in the
+snow Luke and his sister and Ruth had made soon
+after breakfast fooled Neale for a moment, but
+not for long.</p>
+
+<p>They saw the woodsman’s big prints, too, where
+he had been looking for the marks of the fox
+hunter. There were the marks Neale himself and
+Agnes had made when they had followed the
+“deer.”</p>
+
+<p>All these various marks bothered the searchers;
+and all the time, too, the snow was falling and
+making the identification of the various prints of
+feet the more difficult.</p>
+
+<p>“This here’s worse than nailing the animals
+that they say went into the ark that time Noah
+set sail for Ararat,” declared Ike, chuckling.
+“Whoever followed them critters up to the gangplank
+must have been some mixed up—</p>
+
+<p>“Hello! What’s this?”</p>
+
+<p>They had come around behind the sheds. Here
+was the entrance to the road on which Neale and
+Luke with the three older girls had coasted that
+forenoon. The woodsman was pointing to marks
+in the snow, now being rapidly filled in. Neale
+said:</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, we were sliding on this hill, you know.”</p>
+
+<p>“Uh-huh? Who was?”</p>
+
+<p>“Five of us. With a big bobsled.”</p>
+
+<p>“Now, you don’t tell me that bobsled made them
+marks,” interposed the old man. “I know that
+bobsled.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why—I—”</p>
+
+<p>“Them runner marks was made by little Ralph
+Birdsall’s scootin’ sled. I know that, too. Who’s
+gone up to slide this afternoon?”</p>
+
+<p>“That must be the kids!” exclaimed Neale. “I
+wonder if Ruth knows they are out here playing!
+I remember now I didn’t see them at the front of
+the house.”</p>
+
+<p>“You don’t suppose they’ve gone far?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I guess they will come to no harm around
+here. Ruth would not let them go away from the
+Lodge to play.”</p>
+
+<p>“Humph!” muttered the old man.</p>
+
+<p>But he went on. There was really no reason
+for Neale to be worried about the children. They
+were almost always well behaved. At least, they
+seldom disobeyed.</p>
+
+<p>Besides, it was only a few minutes later when
+Mr. Howbridge, well muffled against the storm, appeared
+with Tom Jonah on a leash. The old
+woodsman had just got down on his knees in the
+snow to examine two lines of faint impressions
+that left the path John’s footprints had made to
+the farther shed.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, what’s this? A deer jumped out here—or
+what?”</p>
+
+<p>Neale waited and Mr. Howbridge held the dog
+back. Ike got up and followed the half-filled impressions
+a little farther. They headed directly
+for the thicker woods to the north of the Lodge
+premises.</p>
+
+<p>“Might have been feet—small feet. And two
+sets of ’em,” said Ike. “Hi, Mister! did you find
+anything up in that closet belongin’ to the twins?”</p>
+
+<p>“Here is a pair of bed slippers. Knitted ones.
+They are much too small for a grown person,” the
+lawyer declared.</p>
+
+<p>M’Graw took the articles thoughtfully into his
+big hands. “Humph! Look like little Missie’s
+slippers. Certainly do. Roweny, you know.
+Wonder if this old dog knows anything.”</p>
+
+<p>He offered the slippers to Tom Jonah to sniff.
+The dog had been used to following a scent in
+times past; often they would send him after Dot
+or Tess or Sammy. He snuffed eagerly at the
+knitted shoes.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t know how strong the scent is on ’em.
+It’s been some time, p’r’aps, since little Roweny
+wore ’em. But—”</p>
+
+<p>Tom Jonah whined, sniffed again, and then lifted
+up his muzzle and barked, straining at the leash.</p>
+
+<p>“Looks like he understands,” said the old man,
+reaching for the leash and taking the bight of it
+from Mr. Howbridge’s hand. “Good dog! Now,
+go to it. These here footprints—if that’s what
+they are—are fillin’ in fast.”</p>
+
+<p>Tom Jonah put his nose to the marks in the
+snow. He sniffed, threw some of the light snow
+about with his nose, and started off. He followed
+the faint trail into the woods. But Neale doubted
+if the dog followed by scent.</p>
+
+<p>Once in the thicket the marks were only visible
+here and there. The fresh snow was sifting down
+faster and faster. The dog leaped from one spot
+to another, whining, and eagerly seeking to pick
+up the scent.</p>
+
+<p>“It’s awful unlucky this here snow commenced
+as it has. Hi! I don’t see what we can do,”
+sighed Ike.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you really believe those marks were the
+twins’ footsteps?”</p>
+
+<p>“I do. I believe they was in the house when
+your folks came, Mr. Howbridge,” M’Graw said.
+“But now—”</p>
+
+<p>Tom Jonah halted, threw up his shaggy head,
+and howled mournfully.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, don’t, Tom Jonah!” cried Neale O’Neil.
+“It sounds like—like somebody was dead!”</p>
+
+<p>“Or lost, eh?” suggested Ike. “Ain’t no use.
+He—nor a better dog—couldn’t follow a scent
+through such snow. We’re too late. But I’d like
+to know where them children went, if these is
+them!”</p>
+
+<p>They turned back toward the Lodge, rather disheartened.
+If the two Birdsall children, who had
+been left to the care of Mr. Howbridge, were really
+up here alone in the wilderness—and perhaps shelterless
+at this time—what might not happen to
+them? What would be the end of this strange
+and menacing situation?</p>
+
+<p>Nobody spoke after M’Graw expressed himself
+until they came to the path on which they had
+previously seen the marks of the small sled and
+the footprints of Sammy and the two youngest
+Corner House girls. These traces were now
+entirely obliterated. It was snowing heavily and the
+wind was rising.</p>
+
+<p>“Hi gorry!” ejaculated the old woodsman,
+“how about those other children? Are they at
+home where they ought to be?”</p>
+
+<p>“Whom do you mean?” asked the lawyer, rather
+startled.</p>
+
+<p>But Neale understood. He looked sharply
+about. Not an impression in the snow but that of
+their own feet was visible.</p>
+
+<p>“I’ll go and see if the sled is returned to the
+place they got it from,” he said, and dashed away
+to the shed.</p>
+
+<p>Before Mr. Howbridge and M’Graw had reached
+the Lodge Neale O’Neil came tearing after them.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, wait! Wait!” he shouted. “They
+haven’t come back with the sled. What do you
+suppose can have happened to Sammy and Tess
+and Dot?”</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink21'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XXI—ROWDY</a></h2>
+
+<p>About the time Neale O’Neil was asking his
+very pertinent question about the whereabouts of
+Sammy and Tess and Dot, that trio had stopped,
+breathless and not a little frightened, in a big
+drift at what seemed the bottom of a deep hole.</p>
+
+<p>The snow swirled about them so, and they
+seemed to have come so far down from the place
+where they had pushed off on the sled, that they
+believed it was a deep hole; and there seemed no
+possibility of getting out of it.</p>
+
+<p>“I—I guess,” quavered Dot, “that we’ll just
+have to lie right down here and let the snow cover
+us all—all up.”</p>
+
+<p>“I do wish, child, when you get into trouble that
+you wouldn’t give up all hope, right first off!”
+exclaimed Tess, rather exasperated at her sister.
+“Of course we are not going to give up and lie
+down in this snow.”</p>
+
+<p>“Of course not!” echoed Sammy Pinkney.</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, Sammy experienced a chill up and
+down his spine, and the short hairs at the back of
+his neck stiffened. It was borne upon his mind
+all of a sudden that they were lost—utterly lost!
+He could not understand how they had got off of
+the straight path to Red Deer Lodge; but he was
+very sure that they had done so and, as far as he
+knew, they were miles and miles away from that
+shelter and from their friends.</p>
+
+<p>Yet there seemed nothing to do but keep on
+through the snow—as long as they could press forward.
+Tess was quite as plucky as he made believe
+to be. And they could haul Dot a little way
+at a time on the sled.</p>
+
+<p>“But we’re going on, Sammy, without getting
+anywhere,” was Tess’ very wise observation. “I
+think we ought to scrouge down under something
+until the snow stops.”</p>
+
+<p>“Just like the Babes in the Woods,” wailed Dot,
+who knew all the nursery stories.</p>
+
+<p>“Do be still!” cried her sister, quite tartly.
+“Sammy and I are going to find you a nice place
+to stop, Dot.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I hope it’s a place with a fire in it, ’cause
+I’m cold,” complained the smallest Corner House
+girl.</p>
+
+<p>They all wished for a fire and shelter, but the
+older ones feared with reason that both comforts
+would not be immediately found. Sammy had not
+ventured forth this time prepared for all emergencies,
+as he had the time that Dot and he ran
+away to sail piratically the canal. He had no
+means of making a fire, even if he could find fuel.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy was not without fertility of ideas, however;
+and these to a practical end. It must never
+be said of him, when the lost party got back to Red
+Deer Lodge, that he had not done his duty toward
+his companions.</p>
+
+<p>He saw that the lower branches of some of the
+big spruce trees swept the snow—indeed, their
+ends were drifted over in places. Under those
+trees were shelters that would break both the wind
+and the snow. He said this to Tess, and she
+agreed.</p>
+
+<p>“But we must keep a hole open to look out of,”
+she said. “Otherwise we won’t see the folks when
+they come hunting for us.”</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>! If they come along this road
+while it’s snowing like this lookin’ for us, we’d
+never see ’em,” muttered the boy.</p>
+
+<p>But he kept this opinion to himself. Vigorous
+action claimed Sammy Pinkney almost immediately.
+While Dot “sniffled,” as he called it, on the
+half-buried sled, Sammy started to dig under the
+boughs of a tree near at hand.</p>
+
+<p>The wind seemed to be less boisterous here, but
+the snow was drifting rapidly. Back of the tree
+the steep hillside rose abruptly, somewhat sheltering
+the spot.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy burrowed through the drift like a dog
+seeking a rabbit. He found a way between two
+branches of the spruce, over which the snow had
+packed hard at a previous fall. He had to break
+away fronds of the tough branches to open a hole
+into the dark interior.</p>
+
+<p>“Come on!” he shouted, half smothered by the
+snow he was pawing out. “Here’s a hole.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Sammy! suppose there should be something
+in there?” gasped Tess, her lips close to his
+ear.</p>
+
+<p>At this suggestion Master Sammy drew back
+with some precipitation.</p>
+
+<p>“Aw, Tess! what d’you want to say such things
+to a feller for?” he growled. “If there is anything
+in there we’ll find it out soon enough.”</p>
+
+<p>Dot’s sharp ears had heard something of this.
+She shrieked:</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Is it mice? I am afraid of mice, and I
+won’t go in there till you drive them all out,
+Sammy.”</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” murmured Sammy, with vast
+disgust. “Don’t girls beat everything?”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t care! I don’t like mice,” reiterated
+the smallest Corner House girl.</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” declared Sammy, wickedly, “maybe
+there’ll be wolves under there.”</p>
+
+<p>“Wolfs? Well, I haven’t my Alice-doll here,
+so I don’t care about wolfs. But mice I am afraid
+of!”</p>
+
+<p>At that Sammy took a deep breath, gritted his
+teeth, and dived out of sight. He found that there
+was quite a sharp incline over hard snow to the
+bottom of the hole. All around the trunk of the
+tree, and next to it, was bare, hard ground. It
+made a roomy shelter, and it was just as warm
+as any house could be without a fire.</p>
+
+<p>There was a quantity of dry and dead branches
+under here to scratch him and tear at his clothing.
+Sammy broke these off as he crawled around the
+tree, making the way less difficult for the little
+girls when they should enter.</p>
+
+<p>A little light entered by the hole down which he
+had plunged. It made the interior of the strange
+shelter of a murky brownness, not at all helpful
+in “seeing things.”</p>
+
+<p>Sammy was quite sure there was no wolf housed
+in here; but about the mice or other small rodents
+he was not so sure.</p>
+
+<p>However, he called to the little girls cheerfully
+to come down, and Dot immediately scrambled in,
+feet first. Tess followed her sister with less precipitation.
+Like Sammy, she felt the burden of
+their situation much more than did Dot. “Sufficient
+unto the day is the evil thereof,” was Dot’s
+opinion.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy crawled out again and rescued the sled
+which was already buried in the snow. He
+dragged it to the opening and left it right over
+the hole so as to keep the snow from drifting in
+upon them.</p>
+
+<p>“But it makes it so dark, Sammy!” said Tess,
+a little sharply.</p>
+
+<p>“Wait a while. You can see better pretty soon.
+Your eyes get used to the dark—just like you went
+down cellar at night for a hod of coal.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I wouldn’t!” declared Dot. “But I’m not
+afraid of the dark. It’s nothing you can feel.”</p>
+
+<p>So they were very cozy and fairly warm under
+the tree. Soon the snow had heaped so thickly
+over the mouth of their shelter that they could
+not even hear the wind.</p>
+
+<p>They had eaten a good lunch. Sammy had some
+nuts in his pockets. It was now about four
+o’clock. They were not likely to suffer for anything
+needful for some time. And, of course,
+neither of the three thought that their stay under
+the spruce tree would be for long.</p>
+
+<p>“If the snow doesn’t stop pretty soon, and so
+we can get out and find the way home, Neale
+O’Neil and Aggie will come for us,” Dot said, with
+considerable cheerfulness for her. “I’m all warm
+now, and I don’t care.”</p>
+
+<p>Sammy did not feel altogether as sure that they
+would escape from the difficulty so easily; but he
+did not openly express his belief. He was, like
+the little girls, glad to have found shelter. With
+provisions and a fire, he said, they could stay here
+like Crusoes.</p>
+
+<p>“You know, Robinson Crusoe lived in a cave,
+and in a hut. And he was all alone till he got
+some goats and a Man Friday.”</p>
+
+<p>“We might have brought Billy Bumps along,”
+said Dot thoughtfully.</p>
+
+<p>“I guess I wouldn’t want to live with an old
+goat,” Tess observed, with scorn.</p>
+
+<p>They had no means of measuring the passage of
+time, and of course it seemed that “hours and
+hours” must have passed before Sammy tried to
+look out through the opening the first time.</p>
+
+<p>And this was no easy work. The snow had
+gathered so quickly and packed down so hard upon
+the sled that the boy could scarcely raise it.
+Finally, by backing under the sled and rising up
+with it on his shoulders, the sturdy little fellow
+broke through the drift.</p>
+
+<p>“I got it!” he shouted back to Tess and Dot.
+“But, oh, Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>! ain’t it snowin’ though?
+Bet it never snowed so hard before. I guess we’ll
+have to stay here till they dig us out.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Sammy! All night?” gasped Dot.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I don’t know about that. But until this
+old snow stops, anyway.”</p>
+
+<p>He, nor the little girls, scarcely appreciated the
+fact that the worst blizzard of the winter had
+broken over that territory, and that trails and
+paths were being utterly obliterated. The keenest
+scented dog, and the most experienced woodsman,
+could not have traced the three children to
+their present shelter.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy came in and fixed the sled again to keep
+out the snow. He felt pretty serious—for him.
+Sammy Pinkney was not in the habit of looking
+for the worst to happen. Quite the contrary.</p>
+
+<p>Yet he could not throw off anxiety as easily as
+Dot could. As long as she was not hungry, and
+was warm, the smallest Corner House girl felt
+quite cheerful.</p>
+
+<p>They could see a little better in their cozy nest
+now, and being assured that there were no mice,
+thought of other wild creatures of the forest did
+not disturb Dot Kenway.</p>
+
+<p>“Let’s play something,” said Dot. “Cum-ge-cum!”</p>
+
+<p>“What do you come by?” asked Tess quickly.
+This was an old, old game of guessing that Aunt
+Sarah Maltby had taught the little folks.</p>
+
+<p>“I come by the letter ‘S,’” declared Dot.</p>
+
+<p>“Snow,” guessed Sammy promptly.</p>
+
+<p>“No.”</p>
+
+<p>“It’s got to be the ’nitial of something in this—this
+house,” Tess observed. “Shoes, Dottie?”</p>
+
+<p>“No. ’Tisn’t shoes. And ’tis in the house—if
+you call this a house.”</p>
+
+<p>“Shirt,” Sammy declared.</p>
+
+<p>“Nopy!”</p>
+
+<p>“Sled?” guessed Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“No, it is not ‘sled,’” said the littlest girl.</p>
+
+<p>“Stockin’s?” suggested Sammy. “I’ve got a
+hole in one o’ mine. Feels like my big toe was
+stranglin’ to death, so it does.”</p>
+
+<p>“S-s-s—”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, stop!” shrieked Dot suddenly. “What’s
+that at the door?”</p>
+
+<p>The two little girls shrieked again and scrambled
+behind the trunk of the tree. Sammy was
+just as scared as a child could be, but he sat right
+where he was and watched the dim light grow at
+the hole over which he had pulled the sled.</p>
+
+<p>Something was scratching there, dragging the
+sled away from over the hole in the snowdrift.
+Sammy did not know that even the hungriest animal
+in the forest was snugly housed during this
+storm. The creatures of the wild do not hunt
+when the weather is so boisterous.</p>
+
+<p>It might have been a wolf, or a bear, or a lynx,
+<i>or a tiger</i>, as far as the small boy knew. Just the
+same, having the responsibility of Tess and Dot
+on his mind, he had to stay and face the unknown.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly a voice spoke from without. It said
+with much disgust:</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, shut up your squalling. I’m not going to
+bite you.”</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” murmured Sammy. “What’s
+this?”</p>
+
+<p>In a minute he was reassured, for the sled was
+torn away and a head and shoulders appeared
+down the opening through the drift.</p>
+
+<p>“Hello!” exclaimed the voice again. “How
+did you get here? How many of you are there?”</p>
+
+<p>“Two girls and a boy. And we slid here,” said
+Sammy, gulping down a big lump in his throat.</p>
+
+<p>“<i>Girls?</i>” gasped the stranger, who seemed to be
+very little older than Sammy himself. “Girls out
+in this blizzard?”</p>
+
+<p>“No. We’re all safe in here under the tree,”
+said Sammy, with some indignation. “I wouldn’t
+let ’em stay out in the storm.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” exclaimed the stranger. “And do you
+intend to stay here till it stops snowing?”</p>
+
+<p>“Why not?” demanded Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“That won’t be until tomorrow—maybe next
+day,” was the cheerful response. “I guess you
+don’t know much about storms up here in the
+woods.”</p>
+
+<p>“Nope. We come from Milton.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” exclaimed the other. “You’re some of
+that bunch from Red Deer Lodge, aren’t you?”</p>
+
+<p>“Ye—yes, sir,” Tess interposed politely. “Do
+you suppose you could show us the way home?”</p>
+
+<p>“Just now I couldn’t,” said the other, wriggling
+his way into the shelter. “This is pretty good in
+here. But you’d better come to my cave.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! do you live in a cave?” asked Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“Isn’t it dark?” asked Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“Are there fishes in it with blind eyes?” demanded
+Dot, who had heard something about the
+fish of the streams in the Mammoth Cave, and
+thought all caves were alike.</p>
+
+<p>“Fish?” snorted the newcomer. “I guess not!
+Wish there were. We’d eat them. And we need
+meat.”</p>
+
+<p>“Is—is your cave far?” asked Sammy, in some
+doubt.</p>
+
+<p>“No. Just back of this tree. And we’d better
+get back there quick, or the door will be all snowed
+under. This is a big, big storm.”</p>
+
+<p>“Who are you?” Tess asked. “If you don’t
+mind telling us. This is Sammy Pinkney; and
+I’m Tess Kenway; and this is my sister, Dot.”</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” said the stranger. “I—I’m Rowdy.”</p>
+
+<p>“Rowdy?” repeated Tess, wonderingly.</p>
+
+<p>“That’s what they call me,” said the other
+hastily. “Just Rowdy. And we’d better go to
+my cave.”</p>
+
+<p>“But you don’t live out here in the woods all
+by yourself, do you?” asked Sammy, in much surprise.</p>
+
+<p>“No. But—but my father’s gone a long way
+off.” The boy hesitated a moment, and then
+added: “Gone to Canada—trapping. Won’t be
+back for ever so long. So I live in the cave.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, my!” murmured Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” exclaimed Sammy. “Ain’t
+you afraid to live here alone?”</p>
+
+<p>“I’m not afraid,” said their new friend. “And
+there’s nobody to boss you all the time here.
+Come on. You follow me. Drag along the sled.
+We might need that after the snow’s stopped.”</p>
+
+<p>He started to crawl out through the hole into the
+storm again, and the trio from Red Deer Lodge
+decided that there was nothing better to do than
+to follow him.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink22'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XXII—IN THE CAVE</a></h2>
+
+<p>The snow beat down upon them so when they
+were outside of the shelter that the little girls
+could scarcely get their breath. Dot clung to
+Tess’ hand and bleated a few complaining words.
+But the strange boy said sharply:</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t be blubbering. We’ll be all right in a
+minute. I want to hunt for something around
+here. That’s what I come out of the cave for.”</p>
+
+<p>“Am not blubbering!” muttered Dot, quite indignant.
+“But this old snow—”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I’ve got it!” shouted the strange boy,
+leaping ahead through the snow with great vigor.
+“Come on! Don’t lose sight of me.”</p>
+
+<p>“You bet we won’t,” said Sammy, urging Tess
+and Dot on ahead of him and dragging the sled
+after.</p>
+
+<p>“What is it?” asked Tess, curiously.</p>
+
+<p>“A trap,” said the other.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!”</p>
+
+<p>“What kind of a trap?” asked the eager
+Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“Rabbit trap. Box trap. Rafe and I brought
+it down here with us and set it this morning. I
+put a handful of corn in it and I saw rabbit tracks
+all about just before it began to snow so hard.
+Here it is.”</p>
+
+<p>The speaker had knelt down in the snow and was
+uncovering some long, narrow object with his
+hands.</p>
+
+<p>“It’s sprung, anyway. You see, the door’s
+dropped,” he said. “The rabbit pokes right in
+after the corn, and when he begins to eat the
+bait clear at the end of the box, he trips the trigger
+and the door falls. Yes! He’s here!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>! A real rabbit?” gasped
+Sammy Pinkney.</p>
+
+<p>“A poor little bunny?” murmured Tess, her
+tender heart at once disturbed at the thought of
+the trapped animal.</p>
+
+<p>“Huh! If we are snowed up in that cave for a
+week or so,” said the boy called Rowdy, “you’ll
+be mighty glad I caught this rabbit.”</p>
+
+<p>He had lifted the door and thrust in his left
+hand to seize the animal.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” squealed Dot. “Won’t it bite
+you?”</p>
+
+<p>“It doesn’t bite with its hind legs,” said Rowdy
+with scorn. “Ah! I got him.”</p>
+
+<p>He drew forth the rabbit, kicking and squirming.
+The little mouse-like cry the poor beast made
+sounded very pitiful to Tess. She murmured:</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, don’t hurt him!”</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” exclaimed Sammy to Rowdy.
+“Ain’t girls the worst ever?”</p>
+
+<p>“Huh!” said the strange boy, suddenly glaring
+at Sammy Pinkney, “what do you know about
+girls?”</p>
+
+<p>He was a dark boy, with ragged black hair that
+had evidently been sheared off roughly by an amateur
+barber. He was dressed warmly and in good
+clothes. He wore leggings that came up to his
+hips. He was bigger, and must have been older
+than Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>He stood up now, with the kicking rabbit held
+by the hind legs. The trapped animal was fat and
+was of good size.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” cried Dot. “He’ll get away from
+you.”</p>
+
+<p>“Like fun he will.”</p>
+
+<p>“How are you going to kill him?” Sammy, the
+practical, asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Break its neck,” was the prompt reply.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! How awful!” gasped Tess. “Won’t it
+hurt him?”</p>
+
+<p>“It won’t know anything about it,” said Rowdy.</p>
+
+<p>He was already holding the rabbit away from
+him almost at arm’s length and poised his right
+hand, edge out, for the blow that was to finish the
+creature. Sharp and quick was the blow, the
+outer edge of the boy’s hand striking across the
+back of the rabbit’s neck just at the base of the
+brain. The vertebra was snapped in this way and
+the creature instantly killed—a merciful and sudden
+death. The rabbit kicked but once, and then
+was still.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” murmured Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, don’t worry,” said Rowdy. “Ike M’Graw
+showed me how to do that.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” cried Dot. “<i>We</i> know Mr. Ike M’Graw—so
+we do.”</p>
+
+<p>“How did you come to know him?” demanded
+Rowdy, quickly and suspiciously, it seemed. “He
+isn’t at home now.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, he is,” said Sammy. “He was up at Red
+Deer Lodge last night and he was there again this
+morning.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” ejaculated Rowdy, standing and holding
+the rabbit as though the information gave him
+considerable mental disturbance. “I—I thought
+he’d gone away for good.”</p>
+
+<p>Then he turned suddenly and plunged into the
+drifting snow. “Come on!” he exclaimed again.
+“This snow is drifting awfully.”</p>
+
+<p>Sammy drove the little girls ahead of him
+again. “Aw, go on!” he muttered. “He’s all
+right. He’s got some kind of a hide-out.”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t believe I like that Rowdy,” said Tess
+softly. “He—he’s real cruel. All boys are, I
+s’pose.”</p>
+
+<p>“They have to be,” returned Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“Why?” demanded Tess, in wonder.</p>
+
+<p>“’Cause girls are such softies,” declared the
+impolite Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>They plunged ahead, wading far above their
+waists now. Behind the trees the hillside rose
+abruptly. It towered so above their heads in the
+snow that the children were almost scared.
+Suppose that hill of snow should tumble right down on
+top of them!</p>
+
+<p>“Goodness!” exclaimed Tess, with some exasperation.
+“Where is your old cave?”</p>
+
+<p>“Come on,” said Rowdy, patiently. “It’s here
+somewhere. But the old snow—Ye-e—yi, yi!”
+he suddenly yelled.</p>
+
+<p>Faintly there came an answering voice—half
+smothered, wholly eerie sounding.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Who’s that?” demanded Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“Him,” said Rowdy shortly.</p>
+
+<p>“Then don’t you live alone?” Tess demanded.</p>
+
+<p>“I have my brother with me,” said Rowdy,
+plunging on to the right.</p>
+
+<p>The snow beat into their faces and eyes, almost
+blinding them and wholly stopping their chatter.
+Above their heads the huge trees rocked, limbs
+writhing as though they were alive and in pain.
+And from these writhing limbs the snow was
+shaken down in avalanches.</p>
+
+<p>One great blob of snow fell square on Sammy,
+trudging on behind the procession, and he went
+down with a howl like a wolf, buried to his ears.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Sammy! Sammy!” shrieked Tess, above
+the wind. “Are you hurt?”</p>
+
+<p>“I—I’m smothered!” groaned the boy, struggling
+to get out of the heap of snow. “Hey, you
+Rowdy! Get us out of this, or we’ll be buried and
+lost.”</p>
+
+<p>“Come on!” sang out the bigger boy from up
+ahead. “O-ee! Rafe!” he shouted.</p>
+
+<p>A figure appeared before them—the figure of a
+boy not much bigger than Rowdy.</p>
+
+<p>“What have you there?” a hoarse voice demanded.</p>
+
+<p>“A rabbit.”</p>
+
+<p>“I mean who are those behind you?” and the
+hoarse voice was very tart now.</p>
+
+<p>“A couple of girls and a boy,” said Rowdy. “I
+picked ’em up back there by the trap.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well! But we don’t keep a hotel,” said the
+second boy.</p>
+
+<p>“Hush!” commanded Rowdy. “Where are
+your manners? And they come from the Lodge,”
+he added.</p>
+
+<p>“How are we going to feed so many people?”
+was the rather selfish demand of the second boy
+from the cave.</p>
+
+<p>“Mercy! you’re a regular pig, Rafe,” exclaimed
+Rowdy. “Go on. Take this rabbit. I’ll help the
+little girl. She’s almost done for.”</p>
+
+<p>Dot Kenway really was breathless and almost
+exhausted. She was glad to be taken in the strong
+arms of Rowdy. He staggered along behind the
+one called Rafe, and so came to an opening behind
+a bowlder which seemed to have been rolled by
+nature against the hillside.</p>
+
+<p>The hole was sheltered from the direct effect of
+the wind that was drifting the snow in a huge
+mound against the bowlder. Rafe, with the rabbit,
+dived first into the hole. Rowdy followed, with
+Dot in his arms.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh!” cried the littlest girl with delight.
+“Here’s a fire.”</p>
+
+<p>“Isn’t that splendid?” demanded Tess, who
+came next and saw the blaze at the back of the
+cave, between two stones. “Why! what a nice
+cave you’ve got here.”</p>
+
+<p>The fire lit up the cave, for it was only about a
+dozen feet square. Only, it was not really square,
+being of a circular shape at the back. The smoke
+from the fire rose straight up and disappeared
+through a hole in the low roof through which there
+must have been considerable draught.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, there was a strong smell of wood
+smoke in the cave; but not enough smoke to make
+one’s eyes smart. There were some old blankets
+and rugs on the floor for carpet. Against one
+side wall was a great heap of balsam boughs, over
+which were flung robes.</p>
+
+<p>When Sammy came staggering in with the sled
+he fairly shouted his approval of the cave.</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>! what a jim-dandy place. Say!
+I bet Neale O’Neil would like to see this.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, you needn’t be bringing anybody here
+and showing it. This is our own particular hideout—Rowdy’s
+and mine. So now,” observed
+Rafe, who seemed to be less friendly than his
+brother.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, hush,” pleaded the latter. “Do be hospitable,
+Rafe. Don’t you know these kids are our
+guests?”</p>
+
+<p>“‘Guests!’” snorted the other.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, they are.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, please don’t quarrel about us,” urged Tess
+Kenway gently. “We’ll go right away as soon as
+it stops snowing, and we’ll never tell anybody
+about this cave if you don’t want us to.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t mind him,” said Rowdy. “He’s got a
+cold and a grouch. Come on, Rafe; help me pluck
+this rabbit.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I’ll do that!” cried the red-faced Sammy.
+“Let me!”</p>
+
+<p>While the little girls were glad to sit before the
+fire on the blankets, he wished to make himself
+useful. Besides, to help skin a real rabbit was a
+height of delight to which Sammy Pinkney had
+never before risen.</p>
+
+<p>“All right,” said Rowdy. “You get the potatoes
+and onions ready, Rafe. We have salt and
+pepper and we can have a nice rabbit stew.”</p>
+
+<p>“Just fry it,” recommended the other cave
+dweller. “That’s less trouble.”</p>
+
+<p>“You do as I say!” exclaimed Rowdy, sternly.
+“There are five of us instead of two to eat, and
+we’ve got to make this rabbit go a long way.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, who brought them in? I didn’t,” said
+Rafe, angrily. “You knew we didn’t have any
+too much to eat.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are a nice one!” began Rowdy, when Tess
+broke in with:</p>
+
+<p>“I’m awful sorry we came if we are going to
+make trouble. We can go back under that tree—can’t
+we, Sammy?”</p>
+
+<p>“I’m not going back there,” Dot said stubbornly.
+“There’s no fire there. If this other
+boy doesn’t like us because we are girls, can’t he
+go out and live under the tree himself?”</p>
+
+<p>This idea seemed to amuse Rowdy a good deal.
+He laughed aloud—and the laugh did not sound
+just like a boy’s laugh, either. Tess stared at
+him wonderingly.</p>
+
+<p>“If Rafe’s going to be so mean,” he said, “he
+ought to be put out. Go ahead and peel the potatoes
+and onions, Rafe.”</p>
+
+<p>“Sha’n’t. That’s girl’s work,” growled Rafe.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! If you’ve got a knife I’ll peel them,”
+said Tess. “I don’t mind.”</p>
+
+<p>“All right,” Rowdy said. “Give her the knife,
+Rafe. Put over the pot with some snow in it.
+The little girl can feed that till there is a lot of
+water ready. We’ll want some for tea.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t want tea,” growled Rafe. “I want coffee.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, stop that, Rafe, or I’ll slap you good!”
+promised Rowdy, his vexation finally boiling over.
+“I never saw such a boy. Come on here, Sammy.
+Hold this rabbit by the hind legs and I’ll skin it in
+a jiffy.”</p>
+
+<p>With the help of a knife to start the rabbit’s
+hide, Rowdy “plucked” the bunny very handily.
+It was drawn and cleaned, too, and soon Rowdy
+was disjointing it as one would a chicken, using a
+flat stone for a butcher block.</p>
+
+<p>“It—it looks so much like a kitten,” murmured
+Tess. “Do you suppose it is really good to eat?”</p>
+
+<p>“You wait till you taste it,” chuckled Rowdy,
+who seemed to be a very practical boy indeed.
+“I’m going to make dumplings with it, too. I
+have flour and lard. We’ll have a fine supper by
+and by. Then Rafe will feel better.”</p>
+
+<p>Rafe merely coughed and grunted. He seemed
+determined not to be friendly, or even pleasant.</p>
+
+<p>Tess was an experienced potato peeler. She
+often helped Linda or Mrs. MacCall at home in
+Milton. In the matter of the onions she was quite
+as successful, although she confessed that they
+made her cry.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t see why onions act so,” Dot said, wiping
+her own eyes. “There ought to be some way
+of smothering ’em while you take their jackets off.
+Oh, Tess, that one squirted right into my face!”</p>
+
+<p>“You’ll have to take your face away from me,
+then,” said her sister. “I can’t tell where the
+onion’s going to squirt next. They are worse than
+those clams we got down at Pleasant Cove, about
+squirting.”</p>
+
+<p>“Goodness’ sake!” exclaimed Rowdy. “Clams
+and onions! Never heard them compared before.
+Did you, Rafe?”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t bother me,” growled Rafe, from the bed
+where he had lain down.</p>
+
+<p>Rowdy kept right on with his cooking. There
+being plenty of snow melted, he put down the disjointed
+rabbit with a little water and pepper and
+salt to simmer. Later he put in the onions and
+the potatoes. But they all had to simmer slowly
+for some time before the dumplings were made and
+put into the covered pot with the rabbit stew.</p>
+
+<p>The children were all very hungry indeed (all
+save Rafe, the grouch) before Rowdy pronounced
+the stew ready to be eaten. By that time it was
+late in the evening. It seemed to the younger
+children as though they had been living in the
+cave already for a long, long time!</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink23'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XXIII—ANXIETY</a></h2>
+
+<p>In this valley into which Sammy and the two
+youngest Corner House girls had coasted without
+realizing their unfortunate change of direction,
+the blizzard that had swept down from the north-east
+upon the wilderness about Red Deer Lodge
+did not reveal to the castaways its greatest velocity.</p>
+
+<p>The wind was mild in the valley compared to
+the way it swept across the ridge on which the
+Birdsalls’ home had been built. Already, when
+Neale O’Neil discovered the absence of the small
+sled Sammy and Tess and Dot had taken, the storm
+was becoming threatening in the extreme.</p>
+
+<p>Urged by Mr. Howbridge, Neale ran into the
+house to make sure that Sammy and the little girls
+were really gone. Nobody indoors knew anything
+about the trio. Instantly anxiety was aroused in
+the minds of every one.</p>
+
+<p>Hedden, John and Lawrence, as well as Luke
+Shepard, soon joined in the search. Ike M’Graw
+of course took the lead. He knew the locality, and
+he knew the nature of the storm that had now
+developed after forty-eight hours of threatening.</p>
+
+<p>“No use lookin’ for them twins,” he had told
+Mr. Howbridge bluntly. “If they got away from
+here this mornin’ with grub and a gun, they’ll
+likely be all right for a while. They know where
+to hole up, it’s likely, over this storm. ’Tain’t as
+though they hadn’t lived in the woods a good
+deal, winter and summer. When this storm is
+over I’ll have a look for them twins, and like
+enough I’ll find ’em all right. They air smart
+young shavers—’specially little Missie.</p>
+
+<p>“But these here young ones you brought with
+you—well, they don’t know nothin’ about the
+woods. If they started up that road to have a
+slide, no knowin’ where they are now. They’ve
+got to be found and brought home. Yes, sir!”</p>
+
+<p>Ruth and the other girls had come running to
+the back kitchen where the party was making ready
+for departure. Agnes and Cecile were in tears;
+but although Ruth felt even more keenly that she
+had neglected the little folks, and because of that
+neglect they were lost, she kept her head.</p>
+
+<p>The oldest Kenway hurried matters in the
+kitchen, and before Ike was ready to start with his
+crew, she brought two big thermos bottles, one
+with hot milk and the other with hot coffee.</p>
+
+<p>“That’s a good idee, Miss,” said the woodsman,
+buttoning up his leather coat. “But we’ll probably
+get them youngsters so quick they won’t be
+much cold. Scared, mostly.”</p>
+
+<p>All the members of the searching party did not
+feel so confident as Ike’s expression pictured his
+feelings. And perhaps Ike said this only to help
+ease the minds of those who remained at the
+Lodge.</p>
+
+<p>Neale and Luke walked side by side as they set
+forth against the wind that now blew so hard.
+The snow sheeted them about so quickly that they
+were lost to the vision of the girls and Mr. Howbridge
+before they had gone twenty yards.</p>
+
+<p>The boys were right behind M’Graw. The other
+men trailed them.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t you fellers stray off the road we’re goin’
+to follow,” advised the old woodsman. “This is
+a humdinger of a storm, and it’s goin’ to get worse
+and worse from now on.”</p>
+
+<p>“Those poor kids will be buried in it,” Luke
+shouted in Neale’s ear.</p>
+
+<p>“We’ll dig ’em out, then,” returned Neale, confidently.
+“Don’t give up the ship before we’ve
+even started.”</p>
+
+<p>But there was not much talk after getting into
+the road up which they knew Sammy and the little
+girls had started with the sled. In fact, they
+could not talk. By this time the blizzard was at
+its height, and it was blowing directly in their
+faces as they advanced.</p>
+
+<p>Over boot-tops, over knees, even leg-deep where
+the drifts were, the searchers pressed on. Hedden
+overtook the backwoodsman and shouted:</p>
+
+<p>“Hadn’t we better separate, Mr. M’Graw, and
+beat the bushes on either side of this road?”</p>
+
+<p>“No. Don’t believe it’s safe. And I don’t
+think them little shavers separated. They’ve
+holed-in together somewhere by this time, or—”</p>
+
+<p>He did not finish his remark, but plowed on.
+He did not pass a hummock or snow-covered stump
+beside the road that he did not kick into and quite
+thoroughly examine. Every time Neale O’Neil
+saw one of these drifts he felt suddenly ill. Suppose
+the little folks should be under that heap of
+snow? Nor did Luke bear the uncertainty in
+lighter vein. There were tears frozen on his
+cheeks as they pressed on.</p>
+
+<p>The falling snow and sleet, driven by the wind,
+seemed like a solid wall ahead of them. This buffeted
+the searchers with tremendous power. It
+took all their individual force to stand against the
+storm.</p>
+
+<p>When they finally reached the summit of the
+road, where the young people had started the bobsled
+for the long slide that forenoon, they had
+found no sign of Sammy and the little girls.</p>
+
+<p>Lawrence, one of the men, was completely exhausted.
+Ike made him sit down in the shelter of
+a tree and dosed him with a big draught of the
+hot coffee.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t want to have to lug you back in our
+arms, young man,” snorted the old woodsman.
+“You city fellers ain’t got much backbone, I
+allow.”</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile the other members of the searching
+party examined every brush pile and heap of snow
+for a circle of twenty yards around the point
+where Ike and Lawrence waited. Neale and Luke
+shrieked themselves hoarse calling the names of
+the trio of lost children.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you suppose any wild animal has attacked
+them, or frightened them, Mr. M’Graw?” Hedden
+asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Lynx and them is holed up, all right,” declared
+the backwoodsman with conviction.
+“Nothing would bother them while this storm
+lasts. But I declare I don’t see why we ain’t
+found ’em,” he added, shaking his head. “Not if
+they come this way.”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t think they would have gone beyond this
+spot, do you?” Neale asked. “Here’s the top of
+the hill. They must have started for this place
+with the sled.”</p>
+
+<p>“’Twould seem so,” agreed Ike M’Graw.</p>
+
+<p>“I doubt if they could have walked so far from
+the house,” said Luke.</p>
+
+<p>“’Twasn’t snowin’ like this when they was on
+the way. But if they come up here and slid down
+again, why didn’t we find ’em on our way up?
+Beats me!”</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps we should have brought Tom Jonah
+with us,” Neale observed. “He might have nosed
+them out.”</p>
+
+<p>“The old dog couldn’t scurcely git through this
+here snow,” said M’Graw. “I don’t guess he can
+help us much till the storm’s over. But let’s go
+back. Them young ones must have turned out o’
+this road somewheres. Stands to reason the snow
+scared ’em and they started back. They must
+have got out o’ this woodroad, and then—”</p>
+
+<p>He slowly shook his head. His anxiety was
+shared by all. Wherever the children had gone,
+they were surely overtaken by the storm. If they
+had found some shelter they might be safely
+“holed up” till the storm stopped. But if not,
+neither Ike M’Graw nor the others knew where to
+look for them.</p>
+
+<p>And the blizzard was now sweeping so desperately
+across the ridge that the sturdiest of the
+party could scarcely stand against it. Had it not
+been at their backs as they headed for Red Deer
+Lodge again, it is doubtful if they would have got
+to their destination alive.</p>
+
+<p>The last few hundred yards the party made by
+holding hands and pulling each other through the
+drifts. It was a tremendous task, and even
+M’Graw was blown when Red Deer Lodge was
+reached.</p>
+
+<p>Lawrence was the worst off of them all. Neale
+and Luke literally dragged him through the storm
+from the sheds to the rear door of the Lodge. He
+would probably have died in the drifts had he
+been alone.</p>
+
+<p>The girls and Mrs. MacCall, as well as Mr. Howbridge,
+were awaiting the return of the searchers
+with the utmost anxiety. Not only were they disturbed
+over the loss of the three children, but the
+possibility of the men themselves not returning
+had grown big in their minds. The rapidity with
+which the snow was gathering and the fierceness
+of the gale threatened disaster to the searchers.</p>
+
+<p>When M’Graw fell against the storm door at
+the rear of the house and burst it open, everybody
+within hearing came running to the back kitchen.
+When Ruth saw that they did not bring with them
+the two little girls and Sammy, she broke down
+utterly.</p>
+
+<p>Her despair was pitiful. She had held in
+bravely until now. To think that they had come
+up here to Red Deer Lodge for a jolly vacation
+only to have this tragedy occur!</p>
+
+<p>For that it was tragedy even Ike M’Graw now
+admitted. There was no knowing when the storm
+would cease. If the children had not been providentially
+sheltered before the gale reached this
+high point, it was scarcely possible that they would
+be found alive after the blizzard was over.</p>
+
+<p>At this hour no human being could live for long
+exposed to the storm which gripped the whole
+countryside.</p>
+
+<hr class='tb' />
+
+<p>There was anxiety in the cave in the valley as
+well as at Red Deer Lodge about this same hour.
+But it must be confessed that the children who had
+taken refuge in the cave were mostly anxious about
+that rabbit stew!</p>
+
+<p>Was there going to be enough to go around?
+And had Rowdy made the dumplings all right and
+seasoned the stew so that it would be palatable?</p>
+
+<div style='text-align:center'>
+<img id='ilink04' src='images/illus-004.jpg' alt=''/>
+<p class='caption'>“The housekeeping arrangements of the cave were primitive.”</p>
+</div>
+
+<p>“Why, you’re all sitting around here and
+sniffing at that stew every time I lift the pot cover
+like hungry dogs,” declared Rowdy. “I guess if
+it doesn’t turn out right, you’ll eat me.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, no,” said Dot. “We wouldn’t like to do
+that, for we aren’t cannon balls.”</p>
+
+<p>“You aren’t <i>what</i>?” cried the boy, amazed.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, dear, Dot! Why <i>will</i> you get so mixed up
+in your words?” Tess wailed. “She doesn’t
+mean ‘cannon balls,’ Rowdy; she means cannibals.
+And we aren’t. It is bad enough to have
+to eat rabbit when it looks so much like a cat.”</p>
+
+<p>This very much amused Rowdy and Sammy
+Pinkney; but Rafe, the grouchy brother, would
+not be even friendly enough to laugh at the smallest
+Corner House girl.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t know what’s got into him,” said
+Rowdy. “He never was this way before.”</p>
+
+<p>Rafe lay on the bed of balsam branches, and
+when his brother tried to stir him up he growled
+and said: “Let me alone!” But when the stew
+was done he was ready for his share.</p>
+
+<p>The housekeeping arrangements of the cave
+were primitive. There were a few odd plates and
+dishes. But knives and forks were not plentiful,
+and the tea had to be drunk out of tin cups, and
+there were only three of them.</p>
+
+<p>There was condensed milk for the tea; and besides
+the dumplings which Rowdy had made, there
+were crackers and some cold cornbread left from
+a previous meal.</p>
+
+<p>Rowdy seemed to be a pretty good cook for a boy
+of his age. And he was just as handy with dishes
+and in housekeeping matters as a girl.</p>
+
+<p>The visitors praised his rabbit stew. They
+really had to do that because they ate so much
+of it. Rafe grumbled that they took more than
+their share.</p>
+
+<p>“I’d like to know what’s got into you!” Rowdy
+said to his brother in great disgust. “You are
+just as mean as poison ivy—so there!”</p>
+
+<p>“I am not!”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, you are. And what are you scratching
+that way for?”</p>
+
+<p>“Because my chest itches. What does anybody
+scratch for?” growled Rafe.</p>
+
+<p>After eating, Rafe rolled up in a robe and went
+to sleep at one end of the bed. The others helped
+Rowdy clean up; and, as he said, “just to pay
+Rafe off for being so mean,” they had dessert
+which Rafe had no part in. Rowdy produced a
+can of pears and they opened and ate them all!</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” ejaculated Sammy, when this
+was finished, “ain’t it fun living in a cave? I’d
+rather be here than up to that Red Deer Lodge
+place. Hadn’t you, Tess?”</p>
+
+<p>“No-o,” admitted the honest but polite little
+girl. “I can’t say just that. But I think
+Rowdy’s cave is very nice, and we are having a
+very nice time here.”</p>
+
+<p>Dot frankly yawned. She had been doing that,
+off and on, all through supper.</p>
+
+<p>“I’m afraid there won’t be anybody to put my
+Alice-doll to bed tonight,” she said. “And I
+haven’t any nightgown with me. Why, Tess!
+what shall we do?”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess you wouldn’t want to take off your
+clothes here. It isn’t warm enough,” said Rowdy.</p>
+
+<p>“But can’t we say our prayers?” murmured the
+startled Dot. “Of course, Tess and I spent the
+night once right out under a tree—didn’t we, Tessie?
+Last summer, you know, when we went on
+that tour in our automobile. But we said our
+prayers first.”</p>
+
+<p>“I guess we’d all better say our prayers and go
+to bed,” said Rowdy. “This is a pretty big storm,
+and maybe it won’t stop snowing for ever so long.
+The more we sleep, the less we’ll know about it.”</p>
+
+<p>Therefore, a little later, the four joined the already
+slumbering Rafe upon the heaped up
+branches; wrapping themselves as best they could
+in the torn robes and pieces of carpet.</p>
+
+<p>It was not a very comfortable bed or very nice
+bedding; but they were all too weary to criticize
+the shortcomings of Rowdy’s cave. At least, it
+was shelter from the storm.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink24'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XXIV—RAFE IS CROSS</a></h2>
+
+<p>Sammy Pinkney awoke to hear barking. But it
+was not Tom Jonah, as he had dreamed it was.
+He was chilly, too, and when his eyes got
+used to the semi-darkness of the cave he was sleeping
+in, Sammy discovered that Rafe had deliberately
+removed the share of the bedclothes that
+had been over Sammy and spread them over himself.</p>
+
+<p>“Aw, say!” muttered Sammy. “Ain’t he
+fresh?”</p>
+
+<p>Then Rafe barked again.</p>
+
+<p>“He certainly has one fierce cold!” muttered
+Sammy. “I ain’t got the heart to start nothing
+on him.”</p>
+
+<p>Instead he got up and crept over to the fireplace
+where there were still some red embers.
+Rowdy, or somebody, had evidently been up more
+than once to put fuel on the fire, and now Sammy
+did the same and blew the coals until the wood
+caught and blazed.</p>
+
+<p>Beside the fireplace was a great stack of billets
+of seasoned wood. Evidently this cave had been
+used as a living place for a long time; or perhaps
+it had merely been stocked with fuel for a long
+time.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy hoped it was well stocked with food, too.
+For Sammy was hungry, right then! It seemed
+to him that the rabbit stew had been eaten a long
+time before. There was no clock; but judging
+from the way he felt he thought he must have
+slept the clock around.</p>
+
+<p>He wondered if the storm had ceased. Was
+there likelihood of their being able to get back to
+Red Deer Lodge this morning (if it was morning),
+or would they have to remain until some one came
+to dig them out?</p>
+
+<p>The fire having sprung up now, and the flickering
+light aiding him to see his way about the cavern,
+Sammy moved toward the entrance. This
+aperture beside the huge bowlder was scarcely
+higher than Sammy himself. Before it Rowdy
+and Rafe, the two strange boys, had hung a piece
+of matting. When Sammy pulled this matting
+away he saw snow—snow that filled the hole
+“chock-er-block,” as he expressed it.</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” muttered the startled Sammy,
+“I guess it did snow some. How are we ever
+going to dig out of here?”</p>
+
+<p>There was a slab of wood standing beside the
+opening, leaning against the rock. Sammy seized
+this and began to dig desperately at the snow.</p>
+
+<p>So interested did he become in digging through
+the bank that filled the cave entrance that he did
+not pay much attention to where he flung the snow
+behind him. He was still digging like a woodchuck
+when Rowdy’s voice reached him:</p>
+
+<p>“What are you trying to do? Going to fill this
+cave with snow?”</p>
+
+<p>“Say!” said Sammy, “it’s getting-up time.
+And there’s an awful lot of snow here. I guess
+we’re buried alive, that’s what I guess!”</p>
+
+<p>Just then Rafe coughed again, and his brother
+hopped up and went to him.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t scatter that snow all about, Sammy,”
+he commanded. Then to Rafe: “What’s the
+matter, Rafe, dear? Don’t you feel any better?”</p>
+
+<p>“I’m—I’m chilly,” chattered the boy with the
+cough.</p>
+
+<p>“I’ll cover you up better,” said Rowdy, getting
+his own blanket. “And we’ll have more fire and
+some breakfast. Are you hungry, Rafe?”</p>
+
+<p>“I’m thirsty,” said Rafe, rather whiningly.
+“I want some—some coffee.”</p>
+
+<p>“I’ll make some right away. Don’t be sick,
+now, Rafe. I don’t see what we should do for you
+if you got sick. What <i>are</i> you scratching for?”</p>
+
+<p>“Because I itch,” replied Rafe drowsily.</p>
+
+<p>But he snuggled down under the coverings until
+the coffee should be made. He seemed in a pleasanter
+humor, at least, than on the evening before.</p>
+
+<p>Rowdy bustled about, making coffee and stirring
+up some kind of bread by the light of the fire.
+Soon the fuel heaped upon the blaze made the cave
+warm again, although the smoke set them all to
+coughing.</p>
+
+<p>The two little girls woke up. Dot demanded a
+light.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t like this old smoky fire to see by,”
+she complained. “Why don’t you keep your fire
+in a stove, Rowdy?”</p>
+
+<p>“Haven’t a stove,” replied Rowdy promptly.
+“How did you girls sleep?”</p>
+
+<p>“All right, I guess,” Tess replied. “What are
+you doing, Sammy? Can we go home this morning?”</p>
+
+<p>Sammy was still digging. He tramped the snow
+into a corner behind him. But the more snow he
+dug out of the hole the more there seemed to be.
+He took a round stick as tall as he was himself and
+pushed it up through the snowbank, and it let in no
+light at all.</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” he cried. “There’s all the
+snow in the world blown into this hole, I guess.
+We’ll never get out of here!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” squealed Dot, “don’t say that, Sammy.
+Of course we must get out. It’s coming Christmas,
+you know, and I’ve got to finish my motto
+that I’m making for Ruthie. It’s got to be done,
+and I didn’t bring it with me.”</p>
+
+<p>“But,” said Tess, yet with some hesitation now,
+“the folks will surely come to find us. Don’t you
+say so, Rowdy?”</p>
+
+<p>“If they know where you are,” said Rowdy.</p>
+
+<p>“But we didn’t tell ’em,” growled Sammy, coming
+to the fire to get warm.</p>
+
+<p>“That’ll be all right,” Dot declared, seeing no
+difficulty. “Tom Jonah will find us. You know,
+we never can hide from Tom Jonah.”</p>
+
+<p>Tess explained to Rowdy that Tom Jonah was a
+dog, and a very good dog, too. But she secretly
+had some doubts, as did Sammy, that the old dog
+would be able to find them away down at the bottom
+of this hole where they had coasted. She
+was careful to say nothing to frighten Dot, or to
+discourage her.</p>
+
+<p>They were all much interested in Rowdy’s preparations
+for breakfast. He produced a strip of
+bacon and he fried some of this in a pan while the
+bread was cooking. There was no butter, and the
+coffee was rather muddy; but not even Dot complained,
+as long as she got her share.</p>
+
+<p>While they ate, they talked. At least, Rowdy
+and the visitors talked. Rafe drank the coffee
+and ate his share of the breakfast, and then went
+back to the bed and heaped almost all the coverings
+over him. He had little red specks on his
+chest and arms, and he said he could not get warm.</p>
+
+<p>Sammy was desirous of getting out through the
+cave entrance to see if it had stopped snowing
+and what the prospect was for clear weather. But
+he dug for an hour after breakfast without accomplishing
+much. Then Rowdy came to help him.</p>
+
+<p>“I tell you what I think,” said the Milton boy,
+in a low voice, so the girls would not hear. “I
+b’lieve all that snow that was up on that hill has
+just come tumbling down before this cave—so
+there!”</p>
+
+<p>“An avalanche!” gasped Rowdy.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t know what you call it. But that’s
+what I think,” repeated Sammy. “We’ll never
+dig out of here in this world.”</p>
+
+<p>“But I guess we’ve got to,” said Rowdy
+sharply. “We can’t live here long.”</p>
+
+<p>“It ain’t a bad sort of a place,” said Sammy
+cheerfully. “I guess Robinson Crusoe didn’t
+have a better cave.”</p>
+
+<p>“He had more food than we have,” said Rowdy
+thoughtfully. “And you kids do eat a lot. If I’d
+known you were coming here to live I’d have
+brought more stuff to eat—I surely would!”</p>
+
+<p>“Can’t we catch any more rabbits?” suggested
+Sammy.</p>
+
+<p>“How are you going to catch rabbits when we
+can’t get outside this cave?” returned Rowdy. “I
+guess all boys are foolish. That sounds just like
+Rafe.”</p>
+
+<p>“Say! You’re a boy yourself,” said Sammy, in
+surprise. “You needn’t talk.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh!” rejoined Rowdy, and said nothing more
+for a time.</p>
+
+<p>But they gave up digging through the snowbank.
+The snow seemed packed very hard, and it was difficult
+to dig with a slab of wood. If there had
+been an avalanche over the mouth of the cave
+their chances for digging out were small, indeed.
+Luckily none of the children realized just what
+that meant.</p>
+
+<p>Living in the cave was some fun, as Sammy
+declared. At least, it had the virtue of novelty.
+The time did not drag. They played games, paid
+forfeits, and Tess told stories, and Rowdy sang
+songs. He had a very sweet voice, and Tess told
+him that he sang almost as well as Agnes did.</p>
+
+<p>“And Agnes sings in the church chorus,” explained
+Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“And I think you cook ’most as good as a girl,”
+said Dot. “I guess you cook ’most as good as
+our Linda, at home, in Milton.”</p>
+
+<p>If Rowdy considered these statements compliments
+he did not say so. Indeed, he seemed to be
+very silent after they were made. He sat beside
+Rafe on the bed for some time, and they whispered
+together. Rafe seemed to get no better, and he
+slept a good deal.</p>
+
+<p>So did the other children sleep, after a while.
+Having no means of telling whether one day or
+two had passed, after eating a second time they all
+curled down, covering themselves as best they
+could, and found in slumber a panacea for their
+anxiety.</p>
+
+<p>It was not Sammy who awoke the next time, but
+Tess. She became wide awake in a moment, hearing
+a sound from somewhere outside of the cave.
+She sat up to hear it repeated.</p>
+
+<p>Something was scrambling and scratching in the
+snow. She even heard a “woof! woof!” just as
+though some animal tossed aside the snow and
+blew through it. Tess was badly frightened.</p>
+
+<p>“Sammy! Rowdy! Oh, please!” she cried.
+“Is it a bear?”</p>
+
+<p>“Is what a bear?” demanded Rowdy, waking
+up in some confusion. “I guess you’ve been
+dreaming, Tess.”</p>
+
+<p>“That isn’t any dream!” cried the Corner
+House girl, and she sprang up, seizing Dot in her
+arms.</p>
+
+<p>Rowdy screamed now; not at all like a boy would
+cry out. He leaped from the bed and ran to the
+other side of the room. There, hanging on two
+pegs, was a small rifle. Sammy had eyed it with
+longing. But Rafe, awakened as well, shouted:</p>
+
+<p>“No good taking that, Rowdy! It isn’t loaded.
+You know I shot away the last cartridge at that
+old fox.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Rafe! I told you then you were foolish,”
+said Rowdy. “What shall we do?”</p>
+
+<p>“What is it?” yelled Sammy, tumbling out of
+bed.</p>
+
+<p>“It’s a wolf!” replied Rowdy. “I can hear
+it! Listen!”</p>
+
+<p>Dot added her voice to the din. “Tell that wolf
+we haven’t anything to throw to him, so he might’s
+well go away,” she declared.</p>
+
+<p>Rowdy ran to the hole in the snow. It seemed
+to be suddenly lighter there. Was the beast that
+was scratching through letting daylight into the
+cave?</p>
+
+<p>Rafe shrieked and leaped out from under his
+coverings.</p>
+
+<p>“You’ll be killed, Rowdy! Don’t go there!”
+he cried.</p>
+
+<p>Dashing across the floor of the cave, he seized
+Rowdy and pulled him out of the way.</p>
+
+<p>“Give me the gun!” he ordered, wresting it
+from Rowdy’s hands. He seized it by the barrel
+and poised it as a club.</p>
+
+<p>“Get out, Rowdy!” he commanded. “This
+isn’t any place for a girl!”</p>
+
+<p>At that amazing statement the little girls from
+the old Corner House and Sammy Pinkney were
+so utterly surprised that they quite forgot the
+savage animal that seemed to be trying to dig
+into the cave to attack them.</p>
+
+<h2 class='chapter' id='clink25'><a href='#toc'>CHAPTER XXV—HOLIDAYS—CONCLUSION</a></h2>
+
+<p>It was rather fortunate that Ralph Birdsall had
+shot way his last cartridge in killing the fox three
+nights before from the garret window of Red
+Deer Lodge. Otherwise he might have hurt Tom
+Jonah.</p>
+
+<p>For the old dog scrambled through the drift
+ahead of the searching party that had started out
+as soon as the gale ceased. Tom Jonah was pretty
+near crazy—or he acted so.</p>
+
+<p>Barking and leaping, the dog threw himself upon
+Ralph and tumbled him over. He was prodigal
+with his expressions of joy and affection, going
+from one to the other of the five children, and in
+his boisterousness tumbling them in heaps.</p>
+
+<p>“I never did! Tom Jonah! why don’t you behave?”
+demanded Tess. “And I have been telling
+Rowdy and Rafe, these nice boys, just how
+good and smart you are.”</p>
+
+<p>“Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>!” gasped Sammy, finally getting
+his breath. “They ain’t boys!”</p>
+
+<p>“Who aren’t boys?” asked Tess, wonderingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Well—well, <i>this</i> one isn’t,” said Sammy,
+pointing at Rowdy. “He’s a girl, that’s what
+he is.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, Rowdy! I <i>thought</i> there was something
+funny about you,” Tess Kenway said. “You—you
+were so much nicer than boys are. I declare!”</p>
+
+<p>But this point was discussed no further at the
+time. For into the entrance to the cave came
+tumbling Neale O’Neil and Luke Shepard, covered
+with snow and shouting their joy, while behind
+them was Ike M’Graw.</p>
+
+<p>“Ralph! Roweny!” shouted the old timber
+cruiser. “Jest what sort of doin’s do you call
+this?”</p>
+
+<p>Neale and Luke greeted the three lost Milton
+children with vehemence. Afterward Sammy confessed
+that maybe it was a good thing to get lost,
+for then you found out how much folks thought of
+you.</p>
+
+<p>These three, with Tom Jonah, made up the
+searching party this time. They had come away
+from Red Deer Lodge without letting the others
+know where they were going.</p>
+
+<p>It was really Agnes who started them off on the
+right trail. While the gale still rocked Red Deer
+Lodge in its arms and nobody could go out of
+doors, Agnes remembered about the fork in the
+road where she and her friends had coasted.</p>
+
+<p>“If the little ones tried to slide, they might have
+taken that wrong road,” she said. “They could
+have slid right into it without knowing. Where
+does it go, Mr. M’Graw?”</p>
+
+<p>It did not take Ike long to study out what she
+meant. Then he did some more “figgering.” He
+knew exactly where the branch road led to.</p>
+
+<p>He was so successful in this figuring that he
+encouraged the young people from Milton to believe
+as he did. He saw a chance for the three
+little folks who had gone sliding to be safely
+housed in the cave that he called “Ralph and little
+Missie’s playhouse.”</p>
+
+<p>The Birdsall twins had often camped out in that
+cave hollowed in the hillside at the bottom of the
+valley. If Sammy and Tess and Dot had slid
+down there, more than likely, so Ike said, they
+had found the cave and had taken refuge there.</p>
+
+<p>In addition (but this was his own secret) the
+timber cruiser believed that the twins, having been
+in Red Deer Lodge, had started for that very cave
+some hours before the gale broke.</p>
+
+<p>If the young Birdsalls were there, the lost children
+would be safe enough. This had proved to be
+the case.</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, the old woodsman scolded Ralph
+and Rowena heartily.</p>
+
+<p>“What d’you mean?” he demanded, “by running
+way from your guardian! Mr. Howbridge is
+as fine a man as ever stepped in shoe-leather.
+I’m ashamed of you children. And when you did
+come clean up here, why didn’t you come to my
+shack and stay?”</p>
+
+<p>“We did go there; but you were away. Then
+we thought we had a right to live in our own house.
+You know papa built it,” said Rowena, bravely.
+“We didn’t know anybody was coming there this
+winter. And we brought some food with us from
+Coxford. Then those people came, and we waited
+till we could get out without being caught at it.”</p>
+
+<p>“Some young ones! Some young ones!”
+groaned M’Graw. “Well, now, you’ll go back to
+the Lodge and see what Mr. Howbridge has to say
+to you. And you dressed like a boy, Roweny!”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t care,” said “Rowdy.” “Ralph
+dressed up like a girl at first. We came up here
+that way. But other kids picked on us so that I
+thought I’d better be a boy as well as Ralph. And
+we had these clothes at Red Deer Lodge. I make
+as good a boy as he does a girl.”</p>
+
+<p>“Say!” asked Neale O’Neil, vastly interested,
+“you two stopped a week at the village on the ice
+and fished, didn’t you?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” said Rowena.</p>
+
+<p>“And you were girls there?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well,” said Neale, laughing now, “what I want
+to know is, which of you it was that thrashed those
+two boys that tried to steal your set-lines?”</p>
+
+<p>“That was Rowena!” croaked Ralph from the
+bed. “I acted just like a girl ought to and let
+them take the lines; but Rowena fought them, and
+licked them good, too!”</p>
+
+<p>There was a deal of talk after that, but most of
+it was done following the arrival of the party at
+Red Deer Lodge. As soon as that had occurred,
+however, and Mrs. MacCall had heard Ralph cough
+and heard about the itching, she made an examination.</p>
+
+<p>“There!” she declared, half an hour later after
+she had put the boy between blankets and given
+him a hot drink, “I might have known something
+would happen if we came up to this out-of-the-world
+place.”</p>
+
+<p>“I should think something had happened!”
+murmured Ruth, who still held Dot in her lap and
+hugged her as though she could not let her go
+again. “What is the matter with Ralph?”</p>
+
+<p>“Chickenpox. And it’s coming out thick on
+him right this minute.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Oh! <i>Chickens?</i>” gasped the smallest
+Corner House girl. “Are they roosting on him?
+No wonder Rafe scratched.”</p>
+
+<p>“And like enough you’ll be scratching my lassie,”
+said the Scotch woman. “One an’ all of you.
+I never knew it to fail. If one bairn gets it, all the
+others in the neighborhood catches it.”</p>
+
+<p>Nor was she a poor prophet. All the little
+folks, even Rowena, developed mild cases of chickenpox
+and were kept in the house for most of the
+holidays.</p>
+
+<p>Holidays they were, nevertheless. Perhaps the
+little Corner House folk had never had so good a
+time over Christmas and New Year’s. Ralph and
+Rowena Birdsall proved to be rollicking, good-natured
+children, and they felt themselves at home
+at Red Deer Lodge and could entertain Tess and
+Dot and Sammy Pinkney.</p>
+
+<p>“We won’t blame them for giving us chicken
+scratches,” said Dot to Tess. “At least, Ralph
+did. But he couldn’t help it. And mine’s most
+gone, anyway.”</p>
+
+<p>The “older young folks,” as Mr. Howbridge
+called them, had most delightful times out of
+doors, as well as in. There was four or five feet
+of snow on the ground, on the level, and it was
+packed hard enough to make splendid snow-shoeing.</p>
+
+<p>Ike M’Graw had plenty of snowshoes, and he
+taught them all how to use them. When they became
+adept he led them in short jaunts all about
+the section in which Red Deer Lodge was situated.</p>
+
+<p>The boys went out with him at night, hunting.
+Neale and Luke both killed rabbits, and Neale shot
+a bigger fox than the one Ralph Birdsall had
+knocked over.</p>
+
+<p>Those were wonderful days; but the nights were
+still more wonderful, for they were moon-lighted
+for most of the holiday time.</p>
+
+<p>There is nothing better than coasting by moonlight,
+and of that sport Ruth, Agnes and Cecile,
+as well as the two boys, had their fill.</p>
+
+<p>Nor did they overlook the two holidays, Christmas
+and New Year’s. Ike cut and trimmed a
+huge Christmas tree and that was set up in the
+main hall of the Lodge and decorated in a most
+beautiful manner. Presents had been brought up
+from Milton for everybody. And although Ralph
+and Rowena Birdsall and Ike M’Graw were
+“added entries,” as Luke said, they were not allowed
+to feel slighted when the presents were
+given out on Christmas night.</p>
+
+<p>A big sledge came through from Coxford two
+days after Christmas, and this brought additional
+supplies for the party at Red Deer Lodge. There
+came on the sledge, too, the red-faced Mr. Neven
+who wished to buy the standing timber on a part
+of the Birdsall tract.</p>
+
+<p>There was much talk between the lumberman,
+Mr. Howbridge and M’Graw regarding the timber.
+But Ike proved himself a good “figgerer”
+in more ways than one. The lawyer remained
+determined to accept the old timber cruiser’s report
+as correct and finally Neven came to their
+terms.</p>
+
+<p>Before the holiday of the Milton party was
+ended, a big gang of lumbermen came up the tote-road
+from Coxford and the lake, ready to set up a
+camp in the valley near the twins’ cave, and finish
+the season by cutting over several acres of the
+Birdsall piece.</p>
+
+<p>“I won’t want to see our place up here again
+until the new timber is grown,” cried Rowena,
+mournfully.</p>
+
+<p>“Then you’ll have to wait till we get through
+college,” Ralph told her. “Mr. Howbridge is going
+to have us live with him till we go to college.
+But I expect he’ll bring us up here once in a
+while if you change your mind, Rowdy, and want
+to come.”</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t call me ‘Rowdy,’ Ralph,” said his sister.
+“That was only for our trip up here. And,
+anyhow, I am not going to be a boy—never—any
+more!”</p>
+
+<p>“We’re going to have a lot to tell the kids back
+home,” remarked Sammy Pinkney one day before
+they left Red Deer Lodge. “Je-ru-sa-<i>lem</i>! think
+of that long slide, Tess.”</p>
+
+<p>“But it ended bad,” said Tess.</p>
+
+<p>“It ended good!” cried the boy. “Didn’t we
+find Ralph and Rowena, and live in a cave, and eat
+rabbit stew, and—”</p>
+
+<p>“And get chicken scratches,” put in Dot. “But
+mine don’t scratch any now. The chickens went
+away quick.”</p>
+
+<p class='center' style='margin-top:0;margin-bottom:0;'>THE END</p>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p>CHARMING STORIES FOR GIRLS</p>
+
+<p>(From eight to twelve years old)</p>
+
+<p>THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS SERIES</p>
+
+<p>BY GRACE BROOKS HILL</p>
+
+<p>Four girls from eight to fourteen years of age receive word that a rich
+bachelor uncle has died, leaving them the old Corner House he occupied.
+They move into it and then the fun begins. What they find and do will
+provoke many a hearty laugh. Later, they enter school and make many
+friends. One of these invites the girls to spend a few weeks at a
+bungalow owned by her parents; and the adventures they meet with make
+very interesting reading. Clean, wholesome stories of humor and
+adventure, sure to appeal to all young girls.</p>
+
+<p>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 1. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 2. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS AT SCHOOL.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 3. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS UNDER CANVAS.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 4. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS IN A PLAY.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 5. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS’ ODD FIND.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 6. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS ON A TOUR.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 7. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS GROWING UP.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 8. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS SNOWBOUND.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 9. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS ON A HOUSEBOAT.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 10. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS AMONG THE GYPSIES.<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 11. CORNER HOUSE GIRLS ON PALM ISLAND.<br/>
+</p>
+
+<p>BARSE &amp; HOPKINS, PUBLISHERS
+NEWARK, N. J.—NEW YORK, N. Y.</p>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p>THE POLLY PENDLETON SERIES</p>
+
+<p>BY DOROTHY WHITEHILL</p>
+
+<p>Polly Pendleton is a resourceful, wide-awake American girl who goes to a
+boarding school on the Hudson River some miles above New York. By her
+pluck and resourcefulness, she soon makes a place for herself and this
+she holds right through the course. The account of boarding school life
+is faithful and pleasing and will attract every girl in her teens.</p>
+
+<p>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 1. POLLY’S FIRST YEAR AT BOARDING SCHOOL<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 2. POLLY’S SUMMER VACATION<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 3. POLLY’S SENIOR YEAR AT BOARDING SCHOOL<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 4. POLLY SEES THE WORLD AT WAR<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 5. POLLY AND LOIS<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 6. POLLY AND BOB<br/>
+</p>
+
+<p>Cloth, Large 12mo., Illustrated.</p>
+
+<p>BARSE &amp; HOPKINS, PUBLISHERS</p>
+
+<p>NEWARK, N. J.—NEW YORK, N. Y.</p>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p>CHICKEN LITTLE JANE SERIES</p>
+
+<p>By LILY MUNSELL RITCHIE</p>
+
+<p>Chicken Little Jane is a Western prairie girl who lives a happy, outdoor
+life in a country where there is plenty of room to turn around. She is a
+wide-awake, resourceful girl who will instantly win her way into the
+hearts of other girls. And what good times she has!—with her pets, her
+friends, and her many interests. “Chicken Little” is the affectionate
+nickname given to her when she is very, very good, but when she
+misbehaves it is “Jane”—just Jane!</p>
+
+<p>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Adventures of Chicken Little Jane<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Chicken Little Jane on the “Big John”<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; Chicken Little Jane Comes to Town<br/>
+</p>
+
+<p>With numerous illustrations in pen and ink</p>
+
+<p>By CHARLES D. HUBBARD</p>
+
+<p>BARSE &amp; HOPKINS, PUBLISHERS</p>
+
+<p>NEWARK, N. J.—NEW YORK, N. Y.</p>
+<hr style='border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:70%; margin:2em auto' />
+
+<p>DOROTHY WHITEHILL SERIES FOR GIRLS</p>
+
+<p>Here is a sparkling new series of stories for girls—just what they will
+like, and ask for more of the same kind. It is all about twin sisters,
+who for the first few years in their lives grow up in ignorance of each
+other’s existence. Then they are at last brought together and things
+begin to happen. Janet is an independent go-ahead sort of girl; while
+her sister Phyllis is—but meet the twins for yourself and be
+entertained.</p>
+
+<p>6 Titles, Cloth, large 12mo.</p>
+
+<p>Covers in color.</p>
+
+<p>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 1. JANET, A TWIN<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 2. PHYLLIS, A TWIN<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 3. THE TWINS IN THE WEST<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 4. THE TWINS IN THE SOUTH<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 5. THE TWINS’ SUMMER VACATION<br/>
+&#160;&#160;&#160;&#160; 6. THE TWINS AND TOMMY JR.<br/>
+</p>
+
+<p>BARSE &amp; HOPKINS, PUBLISHERS</p>
+
+<p>NEWARK, N. J.—NEW YORK, N. Y.</p>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Corner House Girls Snowbound, by
+Grace Brooks Hill
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CORNER HOUSE GIRLS SNOWBOUND ***
+
+***** This file should be named 38431-h.htm or 38431-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/8/4/3/38431/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+</pre>
+
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/38431-h/images/illus-001.jpg b/38431-h/images/illus-001.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d1129a6
--- /dev/null
+++ b/38431-h/images/illus-001.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/38431-h/images/illus-002.jpg b/38431-h/images/illus-002.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..910b581
--- /dev/null
+++ b/38431-h/images/illus-002.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/38431-h/images/illus-003.jpg b/38431-h/images/illus-003.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..bceb8ae
--- /dev/null
+++ b/38431-h/images/illus-003.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/38431-h/images/illus-004.jpg b/38431-h/images/illus-004.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f73cee1
--- /dev/null
+++ b/38431-h/images/illus-004.jpg
Binary files differ